For Forest, Jade, Haven and Jerry â and every-one else in the back of the truck
ELEANOR & PARK
Rainbow Rowell
Contents
CoverDedicationTitle Page
August 1986Chapter 1Chapter 2Chapter 3Chapter 4Chapter 5Chapter 6Chapter 7Chapter 8Chapter 9Chapter 10Chapter 11Chapter 12
Chapter 13Chapter 14Chapter 15Chapter 16Chapter 17Chapter 18Chapter 19Chapter 20Chapter 21Chapter 22Chapter 23Chapter 24Chapter 25Chapter 26Chapter 27Chapter 28Chapter 29Chapter 30Chapter 31Chapter 32Chapter 33Chapter 34
5/593
Chapter 35Chapter 36Chapter 37Chapter 38Chapter 39Chapter 40Chapter 41Chapter 42Chapter 43Chapter 44Chapter 45Chapter 46Chapter 47Chapter 48Chapter 49Chapter 50Chapter 51Chapter 52Chapter 53Chapter 54Chapter 55Chapter 56
6/593
Chapter 57Chapter 58
AcknowledgmentsAbout the AuthorCopyright
7/593
Heâd stopped trying to bring her back.She only came back when she felt like it, in
dreams and lies and broken-down déjà vu.Like, heâd be driving to work, and heâd see a
girl with red hair standing on the corner â andheâd swear, for half a choking moment, that itwas her.
Then heâd see that the girlâs hair was moreblond than red.
And that she was holding a cigarette ⦠Andwearing a Sex Pistols T-shirt.
Eleanor hated the Sex Pistols.Eleanor â¦Standing behind him until he turned his head.
Lying next to him just before he woke up. Mak-ing everyone else seem drabber and flatter andnever good enough.
Eleanor ruining everything.Eleanor, gone.Heâd stopped trying to bring her back.
AUGUST 1986
CHAPTER 1
Park
XTC was no good for drowning out the moronsat the back of the bus.
Park pressed his headphones into his ears.Tomorrow he was going to bring Skinny
Puppy or the Misfits. Or maybe heâd make a spe-cial bus tape with as much screaming and wailingon it as possible.
He could get back to New Wave in Novem-ber, after he got his driverâs license. His parentshad already said Park could have his momâs Im-pala, and heâd been saving up for a new tapedeck. Once he started driving to school, he couldlisten to whatever he wanted or nothing at all,and heâd get to sleep in an extra twenty minutes.
âThat doesnât exist,â somebody shouted be-hind him.
âIt so fucking does,â Steve shouted back.âDrunken-monkey style, man, itâs a real fuckingthing. You can kill somebody with it â¦â
âYouâre full of shit.ââYouâre full of shit,â Steve said. âPark! Hey,
Park.âPark heard him, but didnât answer. Some-
times, if you ignored Steve for a minute, hemoved onto someone else. Knowing that was 80percent of surviving with Steve as your neighbor.The other 20 percent was just keeping your headdown â¦
Which Park had momentarily forgotten. Aball of paper hit him in the back of the head.
âThose were my Human Growth and Devel-opment notes, dicklick,â Tina said.
âIâm sorry, baby,â Steve said. âIâll teach youall about human growth and development. Whatdo you need to know?â
11/593
âTeach her drunken-monkey style,â some-body said.
âPARK!â Steve shouted.Park pulled down his headphones and turned
to the back of the bus. Steve was holding court inthe last seat. Even sitting, his head practicallytouched the roof. Steve always looked like hewas surrounded by doll furniture. Heâd lookedlike a grown man since the seventh grade, andthat was before he grew a full beard. Slightlybefore.
Sometimes Park wondered if Steve was withTina because she made him look even more likea monster. Most of the girls from the Flats weresmall, but Tina couldnât be five feet. Massivehair, included.
Once, back in middle school, some guy hadtried to give Steve shit about how he better notget Tina pregnant because if he did, his giant ba-bies would kill her. âTheyâll bust out of her stom-ach like in Aliens,â the guy said. Steve broke hislittle finger on the guyâs face.
12/593
When Parkâs dad heard, he said, âSomebodyneeds to teach that Murphy kid how to make afist.â But Park hoped nobody would. The guySteve hit couldnât open his eyes for a week.
Park tossed Tina her balled-up homework.She caught it.
âPark,â Steve said, âtell Mikey about drunken-monkey karate.â
âI donât know anything about it.â Parkshrugged.
âBut it exists, right?ââI guess Iâve heard of it.ââThere,â Steve said. He looked for something
to throw at Mikey, but couldnât find anything. Hepointed instead. âI fucking told you.â
âWhat the fuck does Sheridan know aboutkung fu?â Mikey said.
âAre you retarded?â Steve said. âHis momâsChinese.â
Mikey looked at Park carefully. Park smiledand narrowed his eyes. âYeah, I guess I see it,â
13/593
Mikey said. âI always thought you wereMexican.â
âShit, Mikey,â Steve said, âyouâre such afucking racist.â
âSheâs not Chinese,â Tina said. âSheâsKorean.â
âWho is?â Steve asked.âParkâs mom.âParkâs mom had been cutting Tinaâs hair
since grade school. They both had the exact samehairstyle, long spiral perms with tall, featheredbangs.
âSheâs fucking hot is what she is,â Steve said,cracking himself up. âNo offense, Park.â
Park managed another smile and slunk backinto his seat, putting his headphones back on andcranking up the volume. He could still hear Steveand Mikey, four seats behind him.
âBut whatâs the fucking point?â Mikey asked.âDude, would you want to fight a drunk mon-
key? Theyâre fucking huge. Like Every Which
14/593
Way But Loose, man. Imagine that bastard losinghis shit on you.â
Park noticed the new girl at about the sametime everybody else did. She was standing at thefront of the bus, next to the first available seat.
There was a kid sitting there by himself, afreshman. He put his bag down on the seat besidehim, then looked the other way. All down theaisle, anybody who was sitting alone moved tothe edge of their seat. Park heard Tina snicker;she lived for this stuff.
The new girl took a deep breath and steppedfarther down the aisle. Nobody would look at her.Park tried not to, but it was kind of a train wreck/eclipse situation.
The girl just looked like exactly the sort ofperson this would happen to.
Not just new â but big and awkward. Withcrazy hair, bright red on top of curly. And shewas dressed like ⦠like she wanted people tolook at her. Or maybe like she didnât get what amess she was. She had on a plaid shirt, a manâs
15/593
shirt, with half a dozen weird necklaces hangingaround her neck and scarves wrapped around herwrists. She reminded Park of a scarecrow or oneof the trouble dolls his mom kept on her dresser.Like something that wouldnât survive in the wild.
The bus stopped again, and a bunch morekids got on. They pushed past the girl, knockinginto her, and dropped into their own seats.
That was the thing â everybody on the busalready had a seat. Theyâd all claimed one on thefirst day of school. People like Park who werelucky enough to have a whole seat to themselveswerenât going to give that up now. Especially notfor someone like this.
Park looked back up at the girl. She was juststanding there.
âHey, you,â the bus driver yelled, âsit down.âThe girl started moving toward the back of
the bus. Right into the belly of the beast. God,Park thought, stop. Turn around. He could feelSteve and Mikey licking their chops as she gotcloser. He tried again to look away.
16/593
Then the girl spotted an empty seat justacross from Park. Her face lit with relief, and shehurried toward it.
âHey,â Tina said sharply.The girl kept moving.âHey,â Tina said, âBozo.âSteve started laughing. His friends fell in a
few seconds behind him.âYou canât sit there,â Tina said. âThatâs
Mikaylaâs seat.âThe girl stopped and looked up at Tina, then
looked back at the empty seat.âSit down,â the driver bellowed from the
front.âI have to sit somewhere,â the girl said to
Tina in a firm, calm voice.âNot my problem,â Tina snapped. The bus
lurched, and the girl rocked back to keep fromfalling. Park tried to turn the volume up on hisWalkman, but it was already all the way up. Helooked back at the girl; it looked like she wasstarting to cry.
17/593
Before heâd even decided to do it, Parkscooted toward the window.
âSit down,â he said. It came out angrily. Thegirl turned to him, like she couldnât tell whetherhe was another jerk or what. âJesus-fuck,â Parksaid softly, nodding to the space next to him,âjust sit down.â
The girl sat down. She didnât say anything âthank God, she didnât thank him â and she leftsix inches of space on the seat between them.
Park turned toward the Plexiglas window andwaited for a world of suck to hit the fan.
18/593
CHAPTER 2
Eleanor
Eleanor considered her options:
1. She could walk home from school. Pros: Exer-cise, color in her cheeks, time to herself. Cons:She didnât know her new address yet, or eventhe general direction to start walking.
2. She could call her mom and ask for a ride.Pros: Lots. Cons: Her mom didnât have aphone. Or a car.
3. She could call her dad. Ha.4. She could call her grandma. Just to say hi.
She was sitting on the concrete steps at the frontof the school, staring out at the row of yellowbuses. Her bus was right there. No. 666.
Even if Eleanor could avoid the bus today,even if her fairy godmother showed up with apumpkin carriage, sheâd still have to find a wayto get back to school tomorrow morning.
And itâs not like the devil-kids on the buswere going to wake up on the other side of theirbeds tomorrow. Seriously. It wouldnât surpriseEleanor if they unhinged their jaws the next timeshe saw them. That girl in the back with theblond hair and the acid-washed jacket? Youcould practically see the horns hidden in herbangs. And her boyfriend was possibly a memberof the Nephilim.
That girl â all of them â hated Eleanor beforetheyâd even laid eyes on her. Like theyâd beenhired to kill her in a past life.
Eleanor couldnât tell if the Asian kid who fi-nally let her sit down was one of them, or wheth-er he was just really stupid. (But not stupid-stu-pid ⦠He was in two of Eleanorâs honorsclasses.)
20/593
Her mom had insisted that the new school putEleanor in honors classes. Sheâd freaked whenshe saw how bad Eleanorâs grades were from lastyear in the ninth grade. âThis canât be a surpriseto you, Mrs Douglas,â the counselor said. Ha,Eleanor thought, youâd be surprised what couldbe a surprise at this point.
Whatever. Eleanor could stare at the cloudsjust as easily in honors classes. There were just asmany windows.
If she ever even came back to this school.If she ever even got home.Eleanor couldnât tell her mom about the bus
situation anyway because her mom had alreadysaid that Eleanor didnât have to ride the bus. Lastnight, when she was helping Eleanor unpack â¦
âRichie said heâll take you,â her mom said.âItâs on his way to work.â
âIs he going to make me ride in the back ofhis truck?â
âHeâs trying to make peace, Eleanor. Youpromised that youâd try, too.â
21/593
âItâs easier for me to make peace from adistance.â
âI told him you were ready to be part of thisfamily.â
âIâm already part of this family. Iâm like acharter member.â
âEleanor,â her mom said. âPlease.ââIâll just ride the bus,â Eleanor had said. âItâs
not a big deal. Iâll meet people.âHa, Eleanor thought now. Giant, dramatic ha.Her bus was going to leave soon. A few of
the other buses were already pulling away. Some-body ran down the steps next to Eleanor and ac-cidentally kicked her bag. She pulled it out of theway and started to say sorry â but it was that stu-pid Asian kid, and he frowned when he saw thatit was her. She frowned right back at him, and heran ahead.
Oh, fine, Eleanor thought. The children ofhell shanât go hungry on my watch.
22/593
CHAPTER 3
Park
She didnât talk to him on the ride home.Park had spent all day trying to think of how
to get away from the new girl. Heâd have toswitch seats. That was the only answer. Butswitch to what seat? He didnât want to force him-self on somebody else. And even the act ofswitching seats would catch Steveâs attention.
Park had expected Steve to start in on him assoon he let the girl sit down, but Steve had goneright back to talking about kung fu again. Park,by the way, knew plenty about kung fu. Becausehis dad was obsessed with martial arts, not be-cause his mom was Korean. Park and his littlebrother, Josh, had been taking taekwando sincethey could walk.
Switch seats, how �He could probably find a seat up front with
the freshmen, but that would be a spectacularshow of weakness. And he almost hated to thinkabout leaving the weird new girl at the back ofthe bus by herself.
He hated himself for thinking like this.If his dad knew he was thinking like this,
heâd call Park a pussy. Out loud, for once. If hisgrandma knew, sheâd smack him on the back ofthe head. âWhere are you manners?â sheâd say.âIs that any way to treat somebody whoâs downon her luck?â
But Park didnât have any luck â or status â tospare on that dumb redhead. He had just enoughto keep himself out of trouble. And he knew itwas crappy, but he was kind of grateful thatpeople like that girl existed. Because people likeSteve and Mikey and Tina existed, too, and theyneeded to be fed. If it wasnât that redhead, it wasgoing to be somebody else. And if it wasnâtsomebody else, it was going to be Park.
24/593
Steve had let it go this morning, but hewouldnât keep letting it go â¦
Park could hear his grandma again. âSeri-ously, son, youâre giving yourself a stomach achebecause you did something nice while otherpeople were watching?â
It wasnât even that nice, Park thought. Heâdlet the girl sit down, but heâd sworn at her. Whenshe showed up in his English class that afternoon,it felt like she was there to haunt him â¦
âEleanor,â Mr Stessman said. âWhat a power-ful name. Itâs a queenâs name, you know.â
âItâs the name of the fat Chipette,â somebodybehind Park whispered. Somebody else laughed.
Mr Stessman gestured to an empty desk upfront.
âWeâre reading poetry today, Eleanor,â MrStessman said. âDickinson. Perhaps youâd like toget us started.â
Mr Stessman opened her book to the rightpage and pointed. âGo ahead,â he said, âclear andloud. Iâll tell you when to stop.â
25/593
The new girl looked at Mr Stessman like shehoped he was kidding. When it was clear that hewasnât â he almost never was â she started toread.
âI had been hungry all the years,â she read. Afew kids laughed. Jesus, Park thought, only MrStessman would make a chubby girl read a poemabout eating on her first day of class.
âCarry on, Eleanor,â Mr Stessman said.She started over, which Park thought was a
terrible idea.âI had been hungry all the years,â she said,
louder this time.âMy noon had come, to dine,âI, trembling, drew the table near,âAnd touched the curious wine.âTâwas this on tables I had seen,âWhen turning, hungry, lone,âI looked in windows, for the wealthâI could not hope to own.â
26/593
Mr Stessman didnât stop her, so she read thewhole poem in that cool, defiant voice. The samevoice sheâd used on Tina.
âThat was wonderful,â Mr Stessman saidwhen she was done. He was beaming. âJust won-derful. I hope youâll stay with us, Eleanor, atleast until we do Medea. Thatâs a voice that ar-rives on a chariot drawn by dragons.â
When the girl showed up in history, MrSanderhoff didnât make a scene. But he did say,âAh. Queen Eleanor of Aquitaine,â when shehanded him her paperwork. She sat down a fewrows ahead of Park and, as far as he could tell,spent the whole period staring at the sun.
Park couldnât think of a way to get rid of heron the bus. Or a way to get rid of himself. So heput his headphones on before the girl sat downand turned the volume all the way up.
Thank God she didnât try to talk to him.
27/593
CHAPTER 4
Eleanor
She got home that afternoon before all the littlekids, which was good because she wasnât readyto see them again. It had been such a freak showwhen sheâd walked in last night â¦
Eleanor had spent so much time thinkingabout what it would be like to finally come homeand how much she missed everybody â shethought theyâd throw her a ticker-tape parade.She thought it would be a big hugfest.
But when Eleanor walked in the house, it waslike her siblings didnât recognize her.
Ben just glanced at her, and Maisie â Maisiewas sitting on Richieâs lap. Which would havemade Eleanor throw right up if she hadnât just
promised her mom that sheâd be on her best be-havior for the rest of her life.
Only Mouse ran to hug Eleanor. She pickedhim up gratefully. He was five now, and heavy.
âHey, Mouse,â she said. Theyâd called himthat since he was a baby, she couldnât rememberwhy. He reminded her more of a big, sloppypuppy â always excited, always trying to jumpinto your lap.
âLook, Dad, itâs Eleanor,â Mouse said, jump-ing down. âDo you know Eleanor?â
Richie pretended not to hear. Maisie watchedand sucked her thumb. Eleanor hadnât seen herdo that in years. She was eight now, but with herthumb in her mouth, she looked just like a baby.
The baby wouldnât remember Eleanor at all.Heâd be two ⦠There he was, sitting on the floorwith Ben. Ben was eleven. He stared at the wallbehind the TV.
Their mom carried the duffel bag with Elean-orâs stuff into a bedroom off the living room, andEleanor followed her. The room was tiny, just big
29/593
enough for a dresser and some bunk beds. Mouseran into the room after them. âYou get the topbunk,â he said, âand Ben has to sleep on the floorwith me. Mom already told us, and Ben started tocry.â
âDonât worry about that,â their mom saidsoftly. âWe all just have to readjust.â
There wasnât room in this room to readjust.(Which Eleanor decided not to mention.) Shewent to bed as soon as she could, so she wouldnâthave to go back out to the living room.
When she woke up in the middle of the night,all three of her brothers were asleep on the floor.There was no way to get up without stepping onone of them, and she didnât even know where thebathroom was â¦
She found it. There were only five rooms inthe house, and the bathroom just barely counted.It was attached to the kitchen â like literally at-tached, without a door. This house was designedby cave trolls, Eleanor thought. Somebody,
30/593
probably her mom, had hung a flowered sheetbetween the refrigerator and the toilet.
When she got home from school, Eleanor letherself in with her new key. The house was pos-sibly even more depressing in daylight â dingyand bare â but at least Eleanor had the place, andher mom, to herself.
It was weird to come home and see her mom,just standing in the kitchen, like ⦠like normal.She was making soup, chopping onions. Eleanorfelt like crying.
âHow was school?â her mom asked.âFine,â Eleanor said.âDid you have a good first day?ââSure. I mean, yeah, it was just school.ââWill you have a lot of catching up to do?ââI donât think so.âHer mom wiped her hands on the back of her
jeans and tucked her hair behind her ears, andEleanor was struck, for the ten-thousandth time,by how beautiful she was.
31/593
When Eleanor was a little girl, sheâd thoughther mom looked like a queen, like the star ofsome fairy tale.
Not a princess â princesses are just pretty.Eleanorâs mother was beautiful. She was tall andstately, with broad shoulders and an elegantwaist. All of her bones seemed more purposefulthan other peopleâs. Like they werenât just thereto hold her up, they were there to make a point.
She had a strong nose and a sharp chin, andher cheekbones were high and thick. Youâd lookat Eleanorâs mom and think she must be carvedinto the prow of a Viking ship somewhere ormaybe painted on the side of a plane â¦
Eleanor looked a lot like her.But not enough.Eleanor looked like her mother through a fish
tank. Rounder and softer. Slurred. Where hermother was statuesque, Eleanor was heavy.Where her mother was finely drawn, Eleanor wassmudged.
32/593
After five kids, her mother had breasts andhips like a woman in a cigarette ad. At sixteen,Eleanor was already built like she ran a medievalpub.
She had too much of everything and too littleheight to hide it. Her breasts started just belowher chin, her hips were ⦠a parody. Even hermomâs hair, long and wavy and auburn, was amore legitimate version of Eleanorâs bright redcurls.
Eleanor put her hand to her head self-consciously.
âI have something to show you,â her momsaid, covering the soup, âbut I didnât want to do itin front of the little kids. Here, come on.â
Eleanor followed her into the kidsâ bedroom.Her mom opened the closet and took out a stackof towels and a laundry basket full of socks.
âI couldnât bring all your things when wemoved,â she said. âObviously we donât have asmuch room here as we had in the old house â¦âShe reached into the closet and pulled out a black
33/593
plastic garbage bag. âBut I packed as much as Icould.â
She handed Eleanor the bag and said, âIâmsorry about the rest.â
Eleanor had assumed that Richie threw all herstuff in the trash a year ago, ten seconds afterheâd kicked her out. She took the bag in her arms.âItâs okay,â she said. âThanks.â
Her mom reached out and touched Eleanorâsshoulder, just for a second. âThe little kids will behome in twenty minutes or so,â she said, âandweâll eat dinner around 4:30. I like to haveeverything settled before Richie comes home.â
Eleanor nodded. She opened the bag as soonas her mom left the room. She wanted to seewhat was still hers â¦
The first thing she recognized were the paperdolls. They were loose in the bag and wrinkled; afew were marked with crayons. It had been yearssince Eleanor had played with them, but she wasstill happy to see them there. She pressed themflat and laid them in a pile.
34/593
Under the dolls were books, a dozen or sothat her mother must have grabbed at random;she wouldnât have known which were Eleanorâsfavorites. Eleanor was glad to see Garp andWatership Down. It sucked that Oliverâs Storyhad made the cut, but Love Story hadnât. AndLittle Men was there, but not Little Women orJoâs Boys.
There was a bunch more papers in the bag.Sheâd had a file cabinet in her old room, and itlooked like her mom had grabbed most of thefolders. Eleanor tried to get everything into a neatstack, all the report cards and school pictures andletters from pen pals.
She wondered where the rest of the stuff fromthe old house had ended up. Not just her stuff,but everybodyâs. Like the furniture and the toys,and all of her momâs plants and paintings. Hergrandmaâs Danish wedding plates ⦠The littlered âUff da!â horse that always used to hangabove the sink.
35/593
Maybe it was packed away somewhere.Maybe her mom was hoping the cave-troll housewas just temporary.
Eleanor was still hoping that Richie was justtemporary.
At the bottom of the black trash bag was abox. Her heart jumped a little when she saw it.Her uncle in Minnesota used to send her family aFruit of the Month Club membership everyChristmas, and Eleanor and her brothers and sis-ter would always fight over the boxes that thefruit came in. It was stupid, but they were goodboxes â solid, with nice lids. This one was agrapefruit box, soft from wear at the edges.
Eleanor opened it carefully. Nothing insidehad been touched. There was her stationery, hercolored pencils and her Prismacolor markers (an-other Christmas present from her uncle). Therewas a stack of promotional cards from the mallthat still smelled like expensive perfumes. Andthere was her Walkman. Untouched. Un-batter-ied, too, but nevertheless, there. And where there
36/593
was a Walkman, there was the possibility ofmusic.
Eleanor let her head fall over the box. Itsmelled like Chanel No. 5 and pencil shavings.She sighed.
There wasnât anything to do with her re-covered belongings once sheâd sorted throughthem â there wasnât even room in the dresser forEleanorâs clothes. So she set aside the box andthe books, and carefully put everything else backin the garbage bag. Then she pushed the bag backas far as she could on the highest shelf in thecloset, behind the towels and a humidifier.
She climbed onto her bunk and found a scrag-gly old cat napping there. âShoo,â Eleanor said,shoving him. The cat leaped to the floor and outthe bedroom door.
37/593
CHAPTER 5
Park
Mr Stessman was making them all memorize apoem, whatever poem they wanted. Well,whatever poem they picked.
âYouâre going to forget everything else Iteach you,â Mr Stessman said, petting his mus-tache. âEverything. Maybe youâll remember thatBeowulf fought a monster. Maybe youâll remem-ber that âTo be or not to beâ is Hamlet, notMacbeth â¦
âBut everything else? Forget about it.âHe was slowly walking up and down each
aisle. Mr Stessman loved this kind of stuff âtheater in the round. He stopped next to Parkâsdesk and leaned in casually with his hand on the
back of Parkâs chair. Park stopped drawing andsat up straight. He couldnât draw anyway.
âSo, youâre going to memorize a poem,â MrStessman continued, pausing a moment to smiledown at Park like Gene Wilder in the chocolatefactory.
âBrains love poetry. Itâs sticky stuff. Youâregoing to memorize this poem, and five yearsfrom now, weâre going to see each other at theVillage Inn, and youâll say, âMr Stessman, I stillremember âThe Road Not Taken!â Listen â¦âTwo roads diverged in a yellow wood â¦âââ
He moved on to the next desk. Park relaxed.âNobody gets to pick âThe Road Not Taken,â
by the way, Iâm sick to death of it. And no ShelSilverstein. Heâs grand, but youâve graduated.Weâre all adults here. Choose an adult poem â¦
âChoose a romantic poem, thatâs my advice.Youâll get the most use out of it.â
He walked by the new girlâs desk, but shedidnât turn away from the window.
39/593
âOf course, itâs up to you. You may chooseâA Dream Deferredâ â Eleanor?â She turnedblankly. Mr Stessman leaned in. âYou maychoose it, Eleanor. Itâs poignant and itâs truth.But how often will you get to roll that one out?
âNo. Choose a poem that speaks to you.Choose a poem that will help you speak tosomeone else.â
Park planned to choose a poem that rhymed,so it would be easier to memorize. He liked MrStessman, he really did â but he wished heâd dialit back a few notches. Whenever he worked theroom like this, Park got embarrassed for him.
âWe meet tomorrow in the library,â Mr Stess-man said, back at his desk. âTomorrow, weâregathering rosebuds.â
The bell rang. On cue.
40/593
CHAPTER 6
Eleanor
âWatch it, raghead.âTina pushed roughly past Eleanor and
climbed onto the bus.She had everybody else in their gym class
calling Eleanor Bozo, but Tina had alreadymoved on to Raghead and Bloody Mary. âCuz itlooks like your whole head is on the rag,â sheâdexplained today in the locker room.
It made sense that Tina was in Eleanorâs gymclass â because gym was an extension of hell,and Tina was definitely a demon. A weird, mini-ature demon. Like a toy demon. Or a teacup. Andshe had a whole gang of lesser demons, alldressed in matching gymsuits.
Actually, everyone wore matching gymsuits.
At Eleanorâs old school, sheâd thought it hadsucked that they had to wear gym shorts. (Elean-or hated her legs even more than she hated therest of her body.) But at North they had to weargymsuits. Polyester onesies. The bottom was red,and the top was red-and-white striped, and it allzipped up the front.
âRed isnât your color, Bozo,â Tina had saidthe first time Eleanor suited up. The other girlsall laughed, even the black girls, who hated Tina.Laughing at Eleanor was Dr Kingâs mountain.
After Tina pushed past her, Eleanor took hertime getting on the bus â but she still got to herseat before that stupid Asian kid. Which meantsheâd have to get up to let him have his spot bythe window. Which would be awkward. It was allawkward. Every time the bus hit a pothole,Eleanor practically fell in the guyâs lap.
Maybe somebody else on the bus would dropout or die or something and sheâd be able moveaway from him.
42/593
At least he didnât ever talk to her. Or look ather.
At least she didnât think he did; Eleanor neverlooked at him.
Sometimes she looked at his shoes. He hadcool shoes. And sometimes she looked to seewhat he was reading â¦
Always comic books.Eleanor never brought anything to read on the
bus. She didnât want Tina, or anybody else, tocatch her with her head down.
Park
It felt wrong to sit next to somebody every dayand not talk to her. Even if she was weird. (Jesus,was she weird. Today she was dressed like aChristmas tree, with all this stuff pinned to herclothes, shapes cut out of fabric, ribbon â¦) Theride home couldnât go fast enough. Park couldnâtwait to get away from her, away from everybody.
âDude, whereâs your dobak?â
43/593
He was trying to eat dinner alone in his room,but his little brother wouldnât let him. Josh stoodin the doorway, already dressed for taekwandoand inhaling a chicken leg.
âDadâs going to be here, like now,â Josh saidthrough the drumstick, âand heâs gonna shit ifyouâre not ready.â
Their mom came up behind Josh andthumped him on the head. âDonât cuss, dirtymouth.â She had to reach up to do it. Josh was hisfatherâs son; he was already at least seven inchestaller than their mom â and three inches tallerthan Park.
Which sucked.Park pushed Josh out the door and slammed
it. So far, Parkâs strategy for maintaining hisstatus as older brother despite their growing sizedifferential was to pretend he could still kickJoshâs ass.
He could still beat him at taekwando â butonly because Josh got impatient with any sportwhere his size wasnât an obvious advantage. The
44/593
high school football coach had already startedcoming to Joshâs Peewee games.
Park changed into his dobak, wondering if hewas going to have to start wearing Joshâs hand-me-downs pretty soon. Maybe he could take aSharpie to all Joshâs Husker football T-shirts andmake them say Husker Dü. Or maybe it wouldnâteven be an issue â Park might never get any tallerthan five foot four. He might never grow out ofthe clothes he had now.
He put on his Chuck Taylors and took hisdinner into the kitchen, eating over the counter.His mom was trying to get gravy out of Joshâswhite jacket with a washcloth.
âMindy?âThatâs how Parkâs dad came home every
night, like the dad in a sit-com. (âLucy?â) And hismom would call out from wherever she was, âInhere!â
Except she said it, âIn hee-ya!â Because shewas apparently never going to stop sounding likeshe just got here yesterday from Korea.
45/593
Sometimes Park thought she kept the accent onpurpose, because his dad liked it. But his momtried so hard to fit in in every other way ⦠If shecould sound like she grew up right around thecorner, she would.
His dad barreled into the kitchen and scoopedhis mom into his arms. They did this every night,too. Full-on make-out sessions, no matter whowas around. It was like watching Paul Bunyanmake out with one of those Itâs a Small Worlddolls.
Park grabbed his brotherâs sleeve. âCome on,letâs go.â They could wait in the Impala. Theirdad would be out in a minute, as soon as heâdchanged into his giant dobak.
Eleanor
She still couldnât get used to eating dinner soearly.
When did this all start? In the old house,theyâd all eaten together, even Richie. Eleanor
46/593
wasnât complaining about not having to eat withRichie ⦠But now it was like their mom wantedthem all out of the way before he came home.
She even made him a totally different dinner.The kids would get grilled cheese, and Richiewould get steak. Eleanor wasnât complainingabout the grilled cheese either â it was a nicebreak from bean soup, and beans and rice, andhuevos y frijoles â¦
After dinner, Eleanor usually disappeared in-to her room to read, but the little kids alwayswent outside. What were they going to do when itgot cold â and when it started getting dark early?Would they all hide in the bedroom? It wascrazy. Diary of Anne Frank crazy.
Eleanor climbed up onto her bunk bed andgot out her stationery box. That dumb gray catwas sleeping in her bed again. She pushed himoff.
She opened the grapefruit box and flippedthrough her stationery. She kept meaning to writeletters to her friends from her old school. She
47/593
hadnât gotten to say goodbye to anybody whenshe left. Her mom had shown up out of the blueand pulled Eleanor out of class, all âGet yourthings, youâre coming home.â
Her mom had been so happy.And Eleanor had been so happy.They went straight to North to get Eleanor re-
gistered, then stopped at Burger King on the wayto the new house. Her mom kept squeezingEleanorâs hand ⦠Eleanor had pretended not tonotice the bruises on her momâs wrist.
The bedroom door opened, and her little sis-ter walked in, carrying the cat.
âMom wants you to leave the door open,âMaisie said, âfor the breeze.â Every window inthe house was open, but there didnât seem to beany breeze. With the door open, Eleanor couldjust see Richie sitting on the couch. She scooteddown the bed until she couldnât.
âWhat are you doing?â Maisie asked.âWriting a letter.ââTo who?â
48/593
âI donât know yet.ââCan I come up?ââNo.â For the moment, all Eleanor could think
about was keeping her box safe. She didnât wantMaisie to see the colored pencils and clean paper.Plus, part of her still wanted to punish Maisie forsitting in Richieâs lap.
That never would have happened before.Before Richie kicked Eleanor out, all the kids
were allied against him. Maybe Eleanor hadhated him the most, and the most openly â butthey were all on her side, Ben and Maisie, evenMouse. Mouse used to steal Richieâs cigarettesand hide them. And Mouse was the one theyâdsend to knock on their momâs door when theyheard bedsprings â¦
When it was worse than bedsprings, when itwas shouting or crying, theyâd huddle together,all five of them, on Eleanorâs bed. (Theyâd allhad their own beds in the old house.)
49/593
Maisie sat at Eleanorâs right hand then. WhenMouse cried, when Benâs face went blank anddreamy, Maisie and Eleanor would lock eyes.
âI hate him,â Eleanor would say.âI hate him so much I wish he was dead,â
Maisie would answer.âI hope he falls off a ladder at work.ââI hope he gets hit by a truck.ââA garbage truck.ââYeah,â Maisie would say, gritting her teeth,
âand all the garbage will fall on his dead body.ââAnd then a bus will run him over.ââYeah.ââI hope Iâm on it.âMaisie put the cat back on Eleanorâs bed. âIt
likes to sleep up there,â she said.âDo you call him Dad, too?â Eleanor asked.âHe is our dad now,â Maisie said.
Eleanor woke up in the middle of the night. Rich-ie had fallen asleep in the living room with theTV on. She didnât breathe on the way to the bath-room and was too scared to flush the toilet. When
50/593
she got back to her room, she closed the door.Fuck the breeze.
51/593
CHAPTER 7
Park
âIâm going to ask Kim out,â Cal said.âDonât ask Kim out,â Park said.âWhy not?â They were sitting in the library,
and they were supposed to be looking for poems.Cal had already picked out something short abouta girl named Julia and the âliquefaction of herclothes.â (âCrass,â Park said. âIt canât be crass,âCal argued. âItâs three-hundred years old.â)
âBecause sheâs Kim,â Park said. âYou canâtask her out. Look at her.â
Kim was sitting at the next table over withtwo other preppy girls.
âLook at her,â Cal said, âsheâs a Betty.ââJesus,â Park said. âYou sound so stupid.ââWhat? Thatâs a thing. A Betty is a thing.â
âBut you got it from Thrasher or something,right?â
âThatâs how people learn new words, Parkâ âCal tapped a book of poetry â âreading.â
âYouâre trying too hard.ââSheâs a Betty,â Cal said, nodding at Kim and
getting a Slim Jim out of his backpack.Park looked at Kim again. She had bobbed
blond hair and hard, curled bangs, and she wasthe only kid in school with a Swatch. Kim wasone of those people who never wrinkled ⦠Shewouldnât make eye contact with Cal. Sheâd beafraid heâd leave a stain.
âThis is my year,â Cal said. âIâm getting agirlfriend.â
âBut probably not Kim.ââWhy not Kim? You think I need to aim
lower?âPark looked up at him. Cal wasnât a bad-
looking guy. He had kind of a tall Barney Rubblething going on ⦠He already had pieces of SlimJim caught in his front teeth.
53/593
âAim elsewhere,â Park said.âScrew that,â Cal said, âIâm starting at the top.
And Iâm getting you a girl, too.ââThanks, but no thanks,â Park said.âDouble-dating,â Cal said.âNo.ââIn the Impala.ââDonât get your hopes up.â Parkâs dad had de-
cided to be a fascist about Parkâs driverâs license;heâd announced last night that Park had to learnto drive a stick first. Park opened another book ofpoetry. It was all about war. He closed it.
âNow thereâs a girl who might want a pieceof you,â Cal said. âLooks like somebodyâs gotjungle fever.â
âThat isnât even the right kind of racist,â Parksaid, looking up. Cal was nodding toward the farcorner of the library. The new girl was sittingthere, staring right at them.
âSheâs kind of big,â Cal said, âbut the Impalais a spacious automobile.â
54/593
âSheâs not looking at me. Sheâs just staring,she does that. Watch.â Park waved at the girl, butshe didnât blink.
Heâd only made eye contact with her oncesince her first day on the bus. It was last week, inhistory, and sheâd practically gouged out his eyeswith hers.
If you donât want people to look at you, Parkhad thought at the time, donât wear fishing luresin your hair. Her jewelry box must look like ajunk drawer. Not that everything she wore wasstupid â¦
She had a pair of Vans he liked, with straw-berries on them. And she had a green sharkskinblazer that Park would wear himself if he thoughthe could get away with it.
Did she think she was getting away with it?Park braced himself every morning before
she got on the bus, but you couldnât brace your-self enough for the sight of her.
âDo you know her?â Cal asked.
55/593
âNo,â Park said quickly. âSheâs on my bus.Sheâs weird.â
âJungle fever is a thing,â Cal said.âFor black people. If you like black people.
And itâs not a compliment, I donât think.ââYour people come from the jungle,â Cal
said, pointing at Park. âApocalypse Now,anyone?â
âYou should ask Kim out,â Park said. âThatâsa really good idea.â
Eleanor
Eleanor wasnât going to fight over an e.e. cum-mings book like it was the last Cabbage PatchKid. She found an empty table in the AfricanAmerican literature section.
That was another fucked-up thing about thisschool â effed-up, she corrected herself.
Most of the kids here were black, but most ofthe kids in her honors classes were white. Theygot bussed in from west Omaha. And the white
56/593
kids from the Flats, dishonor students, got bussedin from the other direction.
Eleanor wished she had more honors classes.She wished there was honors gym â¦
Like theyâd ever let her into honors gym.Eleanor would get put in remedial gym first.With all the other fat girls who couldnât do sit-ups.
Anyway. Honor students â black, white orAsia Minor â tended to be nicer. Maybe theywere just as mean on the inside, but they werescared of getting in trouble. Or maybe they werejust as mean on the inside, but theyâd beentrained to be polite â to give up their seats for oldpeople and girls.
Eleanor had honors English, history and geo-graphy, but she spent the rest of her day inCrazytown. Seriously, Blackboard Jungle. Sheshould probably try harder in her smart classes sothat she wouldnât get kicked out of them.
She started copying a poem called âCagedBirdâ into her notebook ⦠Sweet. It rhymed.
57/593
CHAPTER 8
Park
She was reading his comics.At first Park thought he was imagining it. He
kept getting this feeling that she was looking athim, but whenever he looked over at her, her facewas down.
He finally realized that she was staring at hislap. Not in a gross way. She was looking at hiscomics â he could see her eyes moving.
Park didnât know that anyone with red haircould have brown eyes. (He didnât know thatanyone could have hair that red. Or skin thatwhite.) The new girlâs eyes were darker than hismomâs, really dark, almost like holes in her face.
That made it sound bad, but it wasnât. Itmight even be the best thing about her. It kind of
reminded Park of the way artists draw Jean Greysometimes when sheâs using her telepathy, withher eyes all blacked out and alien.
Today the girl was wearing a giant menâsshirt with seashells all over it. The collar musthave been really big, like disco-big, becausesheâd cut it, and it was fraying. She had a manâsnecktie wrapped around her ponytail like a bigpolyester ribbon. She looked ridiculous.
And she was looking at his comics.Park felt like he should say something to her.
He always felt like he should say something toher, even if it was just âhelloâ or âexcuse me.â Butheâd gone too long without saying anything sincethe first time heâd cursed at her, and now it wasall just irrevocably weird. For an hour a day.Thirty minutes on the way to school, thirtyminutes back.
Park didnât say anything. He just held hiscomics open wider and turned the pages moreslowly.
59/593
Eleanor
Her mom looked tired when Eleanor got home.Like more tired than usual. Hard and crumblingat the edges.
When the little kids stormed in after school,her mom lost her temper over something stupid âBen and Mouse fighting over a toy â and shepushed them all out the back door, Eleanorincluded.
Eleanor was so startled to be outside that shestood on the back stoop for a second, staringdown at Richieâs Rottweiler. Heâd named the dogTonya after his ex-wife. She was supposed to bea real man-eater, Tonya â Tonya the dog â butEleanor had never seen her more than halfawake.
Eleanor tried knocking on the door. âMom!Let me back in. I havenât even taken a bath yet.â
She usually took her bath right after school,before Richie got home. It took a lot of the stressout of not having a bathroom door, especiallysince somebodyâd torn down the sheet.
60/593
Her mom ignored her.The little kids were already out on the play-
ground. The new house was right next door to anelementary school â the school where Ben andMouse and Maisie went â and the playgroundwas just beyond their backyard.
Eleanor didnât know what else to do, so shewalked out to where she could see Ben, by theswing set, and sat on one of the swings. It was fi-nally jacket weather. Eleanor wished she had ajacket.
âWhat are you supposed to do when it getstoo cold to play outside?â she asked Ben. He wastaking Matchbox cars out of his pockets and lin-ing them up in the dirt. âLast year,â he said, âDadmade us go to bed at 7:30.â
âGod. You too? Why do you guys call himthat?â She tried not to sound angry.
Ben shrugged. âI guess because heâs marriedto Mom.â
âYeah, butâ â Eleanor ran her hands up anddown the swing chains, then smelled them â âwe
61/593
never used to call him that. Do you feel like heâsyour dad?â
âI donât know,â Ben said flatly. âWhatâs thatsupposed to feel like?â
She didnât answer him, so he went back tosetting up his cars. He needed a haircut, hisstrawberry-blond hair was curling almost to hiscollar. He was wearing an old T-shirt of Elean-orâs and a pair of corduroy pants that their momhad cut off into shorts. He was almost too old forall this, for cars and parks â eleven. The otherboys his age played basketball all night or hungout in groups at the edge of the playground.Eleanor hoped that Ben was a late bloomer.There was no room in that house to be a teenager.
âHe likes it when we call him Dad,â Ben said,still lining up the cars.
Eleanor looked out at the playground. Mousewas playing with a bunch of kids who had a soc-cer ball. Maisie must have taken the baby some-where with her friends â¦
62/593
It used to be Eleanor who was stuck with thebaby all the time. She wouldnât even mindwatching him now, it would give her somethingto do â but Maisie didnât want Eleanorâs help.
âWhat was it like?â Ben asked.âWhat was what like?ââLiving with those people.âThe sun was a few inches above the horizon,
and Eleanor looked hard at it.âOkay,â she said. Terrible. Lonely. Better
than here.âWere there other kids?ââYeah. Really little kids. Three of them.ââDid you have your own room?ââSort of.â Technically, she hadnât had to share
the Hickmansâ living room with anyone else.âWere they nice?â he asked.âYeah ⦠yeah. They were nice. Not as nice
as you.âThe Hickmans had started out nice. But then
they got tired.
63/593
Eleanor was only supposed to stay with themfor a few days, maybe a week. Just until Richiecooled down and let her come home.
âItâll be like a slumber party,â Mrs Hickmansaid to Eleanor the first night she made up thecouch. Mrs Hickman â Tammy â knew Eleanorâsmom from high school. There was a photo overthe TV of the Hickmansâ wedding. Eleanorâsmom was the maid of honor â in a dark greendress, with a white flower in her hair.
At first, her mom would call Eleanor at theHickmansâ almost every day after school. After afew months, the calls stopped. It turned out thatRichie hadnât paid the phone bill, and it got dis-connected. But Eleanor didnât know that for awhile.
âWe should call the state,â Mr Hickman kepttelling his wife. They thought Eleanor couldnâthear them, but their bedroom was right over theliving room. âThis canât go on, Tammy.â
âAndy, itâs not her fault.â
64/593
âIâm not saying itâs her fault, Iâm just sayingwe didnât sign on for this.â
âSheâs no trouble.ââSheâs not ours.âEleanor tried to be even less trouble. She
practiced being in a room without leaving anyclues that sheâd been there. She never turned onthe TV or asked to use the phone. She neverasked for seconds at dinner. She never askedTammy and Mr Hickman for anything â andtheyâd never had a teenager, so it didnât occur tothem that there might be anything she mightneed. She was glad that they didnât know herbirthday.
âWe thought you were gone,â Ben said, push-ing a car into the dirt. He looked like somebodywho didnât want to cry.
âOh ye of little faith,â Eleanor said, kickingher swing into action.
She looked around again for Maisie andfound her sitting over where the older boys wereplaying basketball. Eleanor recognized most of
65/593
the boys from the bus. That stupid Asian kid wasthere, jumping higher than she would haveguessed he could. He was wearing long blackshorts and a T-shirt that said âMadness.â
âIâm out of here,â Eleanor told Ben, steppingoff the swing and pushing down the top of hishead. âBut not gone or anything. Donât get yourpanties in a bunch.â
She walked back into the house and rushedthrough the kitchen before her mom could sayanything. Richie was in the living room. Eleanorwalked between him and the TV, eyes straightahead. She wished she had a jacket.
66/593
CHAPTER 9
Park
He was going to tell her that she did a good jobon her poem.
That would be a giant understatement any-way. She was the only person in class whoâd readher poem like it wasnât an assignment. She re-cited it like it was a living thing. Like somethingshe was letting out. You couldnât look away fromher as long as she was talking. (Even more thanParkâs usual not being able to look away fromher.) When she was done, a lot of people clappedand Mr Stessman hugged her. Which was totallyagainst the Code of Conduct.
âHey. Nice job. In English.â Thatâs what Parkwas going to say.
Or maybe, âIâm in your English class. Thatpoem you read was cool.â
Or, âYouâre in Mr Stessmanâs class, right?Yeah, I thought so.â
Park picked up his comics after taekwandoWednesday night, but he waited until Thursdaymorning to read them.
Eleanor
That stupid Asian kid totally knew that she wasreading his comics. He even looked up at Eleanorsometimes before he turned the page, like he wasthat polite.
He definitely wasnât one of them, the busdemons. He didnât talk to anyone on the bus.(Especially not her.) But he was in with themsomehow because, when Eleanor was sitting nextto him, they all left her alone. Even Tina. It madeEleanor wish she could sit next to him all daylong.
68/593
This morning, when she got on the bus, itkind of felt like he was waiting for her. He washolding a comic called Watchmen, and it lookedso ugly that Eleanor decided not to bother eaves-dropping. Or eavesreading. Whatever.
(She liked it best when he read X-Men, eventhough she didnât get everything that was goingon there; X-Men was worse than General Hospit-al. It took Eleanor a couple weeks to figure outthat Scott Summers and Cyclops were the sameguy, and she still wasnât sure what was up withPhoenix.)
But Eleanor didnât have anything else to do,so her eyes wandered over to the ugly comic â¦And then she was reading. And then they were atschool. Which was totally weird because theywerenât even halfway through with it.
And which totally sucked because it meant hewould read the rest of the comic during school,and have something lame like ROM out on theway home.
Except he didnât.
69/593
When Eleanor got on the bus that afternoon,the Asian kid opened up Watchmen right wheretheyâd left off.
They were still reading it when they got toEleanorâs stop â there was so much going on,they both stared at every frame for, like, entireminutes â and when she got up to leave, hehanded it to her.
Eleanor was so surprised, she tried to hand itback, but heâd already turned away. She shovedthe comic between her books like it wassomething secret, then got off the bus.
She read it three more times that night, lyingon the top bunk, petting the scrubby old cat. Thenshe put it in her grapefruit box overnight, so thatnothing would happen to it.
Park
What if she didnât give it back?What if he didnât get to finish the first issue
of Watchmen because heâd lent it to a girl who
70/593
hadnât asked for it and probably didnât evenknow who Alan Moore was.
If she didnât give it back, they were even.That would cancel out the whole âJesus-fuck-sit-downâ scenario.
Jesus ⦠No, it wouldnât.What if she did give it back? What was he
supposed to say then? Thanks?
Eleanor
When she got to their seat, he was looking outthe window. She handed him the comic, and hetook it.
71/593
CHAPTER 10
Eleanor
The next morning, when Eleanor got on the bus,there was a stack of comics on her seat.
She picked them up and sat down. He wasalready reading.
Eleanor put the comics between her booksand stared at the window. For some reason, shedidnât want to read in front of him. It would belike letting him watch her eat. It would be like â¦admitting something.
But she thought about the comics all day, andas soon she got home, she climbed onto her bedand got them out. They were all the same title âSwamp Thing.
Eleanor ate dinner sitting cross-legged on herbed, extra careful not to spill anything on the
books because every issue was in pristine condi-tion; there wasnât so much as a bent corner. (Stu-pid, perfect Asian kid.)
That night, after her brothers and sister fellasleep, Eleanor turned the light back on so shecould read. They were the loudest sleepers ever.Ben talked in his sleep, and Maisie and the babyboth snored. Mouse wet the bed â which didnâtmake noise, but still disturbed the general peace.The light didnât seem to bother them though.
Eleanor was only distantly conscious of Rich-ie watching TV in the next room, and she practic-ally fell off the bed when he jerked the bedroomdoor open. He looked like he expected to catchsome middle-of-the-night hijinks, but when hesaw that it was only Eleanor and that she was justreading, he grunted and told her to turn out thelight so the little kids could sleep.
After he shut the door, Eleanor got up andturned off the light. (She could just about get outof bed without stepping on somebody now,
73/593
which was lucky for them because she was thefirst one up every morning.)
She might have gotten away with leaving thelight on, but it wasnât worth the risk. She didnâtwant to have to look at Richie again.
He looked exactly like a rat. Like the human-being version of a rat. Like the villain in a DonBluth movie. Who knew what her mom saw inhim; Eleanorâs dad was messed-up-looking, too.
Every once in a while â when Richie man-aged to take a bath, put on decent clothes andstay sober all on the same day â Eleanor couldsort of see why her mom might have thought hewas handsome. Thank the Lord that didnât hap-pen very often. When it did, Eleanor felt like go-ing to the bathroom and sticking a finger downher throat.
Anyway. Whatever. She could still read.There was enough light coming in from thewindow.
Park
74/593
She read stuff as fast as he could give it to her.And when she handed it back to him the nextmorning, she always acted as if she were handinghim something fragile. Something precious. Youwouldnât even know that she touched the comicsexcept for the smell.
Every book Park lent her came back smellinglike perfume. Not like the perfume his momwore. (Imari.) And not like the new girl; shesmelled like vanilla.
But she made his comics smell like roses. Awhole field of them.
Sheâd read all of his Alan Moore in less thanthree weeks. Now he was giving her X-Men com-ics five at a time, and he could tell that she likedthem because she wrote the charactersâ names onher books, in between band names and songlyrics.
They still didnât talk on the bus, but it had be-come a less confrontational silence. Almostfriendly. (But not quite.)
75/593
Park would have to talk to her today â to tellher that he didnât have anything to give her. Heâdoverslept, then forgotten to grab the stack ofcomics heâd set out for her the night before. Hehadnât even had time to eat breakfast or brush histeeth, which made him self-conscious, knowinghe was going to be sitting so close to her.
But when she got on the bus and handed himyesterdayâs comics, all Park did was shrug. Shelooked away. They both looked down.
She was wearing that ugly necktie again.Today it was tied around her wrist. Her arms andwrists were scattered with freckles, layers ofthem in different shades of gold and pink, evenon the back of her hands. Little-boy hands, hismom would call them, with short-short nails andragged cuticles.
She stared down at the books in her lap.Maybe she thought he was mad at her. He staredat her books, too â covered in ink and ArtNouveau doodles.
76/593
âSo,â he said, before he knew what to saynext, âyou like the Smiths?â He was careful not toblow his morning breath on her.
She looked up, surprised. Maybe confused.He pointed at her book, where sheâd writtenâHow Soon Is Now?â in tall green letters.
âI donât know,â she said. âIâve never heardthem.â
âSo you just want people to think you like theSmiths?â He couldnât help but sound disdainful.
âYeah,â she said, looking around the bus. âIâmtrying to impress the locals.â
He didnât know if she could help but soundlike a smartass, but she sure wasnât trying. Theair soured between them. Park shifted against thewall. She looked across the aisle to stare out thewindow.
When he got to English, he tried to catch hereye, but she looked away. He felt like she wastrying so hard to ignore him that she wouldnâteven participate in class.
77/593
Mr Stessman kept trying to draw her out âshe was his new favorite target whenever thingsgot sleepy in class. Today they were supposed tobe discussing Romeo and Juliet, but nobodywanted to talk.
âYou donât seem troubled by their deaths,Miss Douglas.â
âIâm sorry?â she said. She narrowed her eyesat him.
âIt doesnât strike you as sad?â Mr Stessmanasked. âTwo young lovers lay dead. Never was astory of more woe. Doesnât that get to you?â
âI guess not,â she said.âAre you so cold? So cool?â He was standing
over her desk, pretending to plead with her.âNo â¦â she said. âI just donât think itâs a
tragedy.ââItâs the tragedy,â Mr Stessman said.She rolled her eyes. She was wearing two or
three necklaces, old fake pearls, like Parkâsgrandmother wore to church, and she twistedthem while she talked.
78/593
âBut heâs so obviously making fun of them,âshe said.
âWho is?ââShakespeare.ââDo tell â¦âShe rolled her eyes again. She knew Mr
Stessmanâs game by now.âRomeo and Juliet are just two rich kids
whoâve always gotten every little thing theywanted. And now, they think they want eachother.â
âTheyâre in love â¦â Mr Stessman said,clutching his heart.
âThey donât even know each other,â she said.âIt was love at first sight.ââIt was âOh my God, heâs so cuteâ at first
sight. If Shakespeare wanted you to believe theywere in love, he wouldnât tell you in almost thevery first scene that Romeo was hung up on Ros-aline ⦠Itâs Shakespeare making fun of love,âshe said.
âThen why has it survived?â
79/593
âI donât know, because Shakespeare is areally good writer?â
âNo!â Mr Stessman said. âSomeone else,someone with a heart. Mr Sheridan, what beats inyour chest? Tell us, why has Romeo and Julietsurvived four hundred years?â
Park hated talking in class. Eleanor frownedat him, then looked away. He felt himself blush.
âBecause â¦â he said quietly, looking at hisdesk, âbecause people want to remember whatitâs like to be young? And in love?â
Mr Stessman leaned back against the black-board and rubbed his beard.
âIs that right?â Park asked.âOh, itâs definitely right,â Mr Stessman said.
âI donât know if thatâs why Romeo and Juliet hasbecome the most beloved play of all time. But,yes, Mr Sheridan. Truer words never spoken.â
She didnât acknowledge Park in history class,but she never did.
When he got on the bus that afternoon, shewas already there. She got up to let him have his
80/593
place by the window, and then she surprised himby talking. Quietly. Almost under her breath. Buttalking.
âItâs more like a wish list,â she said.âWhat?ââTheyâre songs Iâd like to hear. Or bands Iâd
like to hear. Stuff that looks interesting.ââIf youâve never heard the Smiths, how do
you even know about them?ââI donât know,â she said defensively. âMy
friends, my old friends ⦠magazines. I donâtknow. Around.â
âWhy donât you just listen to them?âShe looked at him like he was officially an
idiot. âItâs not like they play the Smiths on Sweet98.â
And then, when Park didnât say anything, sherolled her inky brown eyes into the back of herhead. âGod,â she said.
They didnât talk anymore all the way home.That night, while he did his homework, Park
made a tape with all of his favorite Smiths songs,
81/593
plus a few songs by Echo and the Bunnymen, andJoy Division.
He put the tape and five more X-Men comicsinto his backpack before he went to bed.
82/593
CHAPTER 11
Eleanor
âWhy are you so quiet?â Eleanorâs mother asked.Eleanor was taking a bath, and her mom wasmaking fifteen-bean soup. âThat leaves threebeans for each us,â Ben had cracked to Eleanorearlier.
âIâm not quiet. Iâm taking a bath.ââUsually you sing in the bathtub.ââI do not,â Eleanor said.âYou do. Usually you sing âRocky
Raccoon.âââGod. Well, thanks for telling me, I wonât
anymore. God.âEleanor got dressed quickly and tried to
squeeze past her mother. Her mom grabbed herby the wrists. âI like to hear you sing,â she said.
She reached for a bottle on the counter behindEleanor and rubbed a drop of vanilla behind eachof the girlâs ears. Eleanor raised her shoulderslike it tickled.
âWhy do you always do that? I smell like aStrawberry Shortcake doll.â
âI do it,â her mom said, âbecause itâs cheaperthan perfume, but it smells just as good.â Thenshe rubbed some vanilla behind her own ears andlaughed.
Eleanor laughed with her, and stood there fora few seconds smiling. Her mom was wearingsoft old jeans and a T-shirt, and her hair waspulled back in a smooth ponytail. She looked al-most like she used to. There was a picture of herâ at one of Maisieâs birthday parties, scoopingice cream cones â with a ponytail just like that.
âAre you okay?â her mom asked.âYeah â¦â Eleanor said, âyeah, Iâm just tired.
Iâm going to do my homework and go to bed.âHer mom seemed to know that something wasoff, but she didnât push. She used to make
84/593
Eleanor tell her everything. âWhatâs going on upthere?â sheâd say, knocking on the top of Elean-orâs head. âAre you making yourself crazy?â Hermom hadnât said anything like that since Eleanorhad moved home. She seemed to realize thatsheâd lost her right to knock.
Eleanor climbed up onto her bunk and pushedthe cat to the end. She didnât have anything toread. Nothing new, anyway. Was he done bring-ing her comics? Why had he even started? Sheran her fingers over the embarrassing song titlesâ âThis Charming Manâ and âHow Soon IsNow?â â on her math book. She wanted toscribble them out, but heâd probably notice andlord it over her.
Eleanor really was tired, that wasnât a lie.Sheâd been staying up, reading, almost everynight. She fell asleep that night right after dinner.
She woke up to shouting. Richie shouting. Elean-or couldnât tell what he was saying.
Underneath the shouting, her mother was cry-ing. She sounded like sheâd been crying for a
85/593
long time â she must be completely out of herhead if she was letting them hear her cry likethat.
Eleanor could tell that everyone else in theroom was already awake. She hung off the bunkuntil she could see the little kids take shape in thedark. All four of them were sitting together in aclump of blankets on the floor. Maisie was hold-ing the baby, rocking him almost frantically.Eleanor slid off the bed soundlessly and huddledwith them. Mouse immediately climbed into herlap. He was shaking and wet, and he wrapped hisarms and legs around Eleanor like a monkey.Their mother shrieked, two rooms away, and theyall five jumped together.
If this had happened two summers ago,Eleanor would have run and banged on the doorherself. She would have yelled at Richie to stop.She would have called 911 at the very, very, veryleast. But now that seemed like something a childwould do, or a fool. Now, all she could thinkabout was what they were going to do if the baby
86/593
actually started to cry. Thank God he didnât.Even he seemed to realize that trying to makethis stop would only ever make it worse.
When her alarm went off the next morning,Eleanor couldnât remember having fallen tosleep. She couldnât remember when the cryinghad stopped.
A horrible thought came to her, and she gotup, stumbling over the kids and the blankets. Sheopened the bedroom door and smelled bacon.
Which meant that her mother was alive.And that her stepdad was probably still eating
breakfast.Eleanor took a deep breath. She smelled like
pee. God. The cleanest clothes she had were theones she wore yesterday, which Tina wouldsurely point out, because it was a goddamn gymday on top of everything else.
She grabbed her clothes and stepped pur-posely out into the living room, determined not tomake eye contact with Richie if he was there. Hewas. (That demon. That bastard.) Her mother
87/593
was standing at the stove, standing more still thanusual. You couldnât not notice the bruise on theside of her face. Or the hickey under her chin.(That fuck, that fuck, that fuck.)
âMom,â Eleanor whispered urgently, âI haveto clean off.â Her motherâs eyes slowly focusedon her.
âWhat?âEleanor gestured at her clothes, which prob-
ably just looked wrinkled. âI slept on the floorwith Mouse.â
Her mother glanced nervously into the livingroom; Richie would punish Mouse if he knew.âOkay, okay,â she said, pushing Eleanor into thebathroom. âGive me your clothes, Iâll watch thedoor. And donât let him smell it. I donât need thisthis morning.â
As if Eleanor was the one whoâd peed allover everything.
She washed off the top half of her body, thenthe bottom, so that she wouldnât ever be totallynaked. Then she walked back through the living
88/593
room, wearing yesterdayâs clothes, trying reallyhard not to smell like pee.
Her books were in her bedroom, but Eleanordidnât want to open the door and let out any moreacrid air â so she just left.
She got to the bus stop fifteen minutes early.She still felt rumpled and panicked, and, thanksto the bacon, her stomach was growling.
89/593
CHAPTER 12
Park
When Park got on the bus, he set the comics andSmiths tape on the seat next to him, so theyâd justbe waiting for her. So he wouldnât have to sayanything.
When she got on the bus a few minutes later,Park could tell that something was wrong. Shegot on like she was lost and ended up there. Shewas wearing the same thing sheâd worn yesterdayâ which wasnât that weird, she was always wear-ing a different version of the same thing â buttoday was different. Her neck and wrists werebare, and her hair was a mess â a pile, an all-overglob, of red curls.
She stopped at their seat and looked down atthe pile of stuff heâd left for her. (Where were her
schoolbooks? He wondered) Then she pickedeverything up, careful as ever, and sat down.
Park wanted to look at her face, but hecouldnât. He stared at her wrists instead. Shepicked up the cassette. Heâd written âHow Soonis Now and Moreâ on the thin white sticker.
She held it out to him.âThank you â¦â she said. Now that was
something heâd never heard her say before. âBut Icanât.â
He didnât take it.âItâs for you, take it,â he whispered. He
looked up from her hands to her dropped chin.âNo,â she said, âI mean, thank you, but ⦠I
canât.â She tried to give him the tape, but hedidnât take it. Why did she have to make everylittle thing so hard?
âI donât want it,â he said.She clenched her teeth and glared. She really
must hate him.âNo,â she said, practically loud enough for
other people to hear. âI mean, I canât. I donât
91/593
have any way to listen to it. God, just take itback.â
He took it. She covered her face. The kid inthe seat across from them, a twerpy senior whowas actually named Junior, was watching.
Park frowned at Junior until he turned away.Then Park turned back to the girl â¦
He took his Walkman out of the pocket of histrench coat and popped out his Dead Kennedystape. He slid the new tape in, pressed play, then âcarefully â put the headphones over her hair. Hewas so careful, he didnât even touch her.
He could hear the swampy guitar start andthen the first line of the song. âI am the son â¦and the heir â¦â
She lifted her head a little but didnât look athim. She didnât move her hands away from herface.
When they got to school, she took the head-phones off and gave them back to him.
They got off the bus together and stayed to-gether. Which was weird. Usually, they broke
92/593
away from each other as soon as they hit the side-walk. Thatâs what seemed weird now, Parkthought; they walked the same way every day,her locker was just down the hall from his â howhad they managed to go their separate ways everymorning?
Park stopped for a minute when they got toher locker. He didnât step close to her, but hestopped. She stopped, too.
âWell,â he said, looking down the hall, ânowyouâve heard the Smiths.â
And she â¦Eleanor laughed.
Eleanor
She should have just taken the tape.She didnât need to be telling everybody what
she had and didnât have. She didnât need to betelling weird Asian kids anything.
Weird Asian kid.
93/593
She was pretty sure he was Asian. It was hardto tell. He had green eyes. And skin the color ofsunshine through honey.
Maybe he was Filipino. Was that in Asia?Probably. Asiaâs out-of-control huge.
Eleanor had only known one Asian person inher life â Paul, who was in her math class at herold school. Paul was Chinese. His parents hadmoved to Omaha to get away from the Chinesegovernment. (Which seemed like an extremechoice. Like theyâd looked at the globe and said,âYup. Thatâs as far away as possible.â)
Paul was the one whoâd taught Eleanor to sayâAsianâ and not âoriental.â âOrientalâs for food,âheâd said.
âWhatever, LaChoy Boy,â sheâd said back.Eleanor couldnât figure out what an Asian
person was doing in the Flats anyway. Everybodyelse here was seriously white. Like, white bychoice. Eleanor had never even heard the n-wordsaid out loud until she moved here, but the kidson her bus used it like it was the only way to
94/593
indicate that somebody was black. Like there wasno other word or phrase that would work.
Eleanor stayed away from the n-word even inher head. It was bad enough that, thanks to Rich-ieâs influence, she went around mentally callingeveryone she met a âmotherfucker.â (Irony.)
There were three or four other Asian kids attheir school. Cousins. One of them had written anessay about being a refugee from Laos.
And then there was Olâ Green Eyes.Who she was apparently going to tell her
whole life story to. Maybe on the way home,sheâd tell him that she didnât have a phone or awashing machine or a toothbrush.
That last thing, she was thinking about tellingher counselor. Mrs Dunne had sat Eleanor downon her first day of school and given a little speechabout how Eleanor could tell her anything. Allthrough the speech, she kept squeezing the fattestpart of Eleanorâs arm.
95/593
If Eleanor told Mrs Dunne everything â aboutRichie, her mom, everything â Eleanor didnâtknow what would happen.
But if she told Mrs Dunne about the tooth-brush ⦠maybe Mrs Dunne would just get herone. And then Eleanor could stop sneaking intothe bathroom after lunch to rub her teeth withsalt. (Sheâd seen that in a Western once. It prob-ably didnât even work.)
The bell rang. 10:12.Just two more periods until English. She
wondered if heâd talk to her in class. Maybethatâs what they did now.
She could still hear that voice in her head ânot his â the singerâs. From the Smiths. Youcould hear his accent, even when he was singing.He sounded like he was crying out.
âI am the sun â¦And the air â¦â
Eleanor didnât notice at first how un-horribleeveryone was being in gym. (Her head was stillon the bus.) They were playing volleyball today,
96/593
and once Tina said, âYour serve, bitch,â but thatwas it, and that was practically jocular, all-things-Tina considered.
When Eleanor got to the locker room, sherealized why Tina had been so low-key; she wasjust waiting. Tina and her friends â and the blackgirls, too, everybody wanted a piece of this âwere standing at the end of Eleanorâs row, wait-ing for her to walk to her locker.
It was covered with Kotex pads. A wholebox, it looked like.
At first Eleanor thought the pads were actu-ally bloody, but when she got closer she couldsee that it was just red magic marker. Somebodyhad written âRagheadâ and âBig Redâ on a few ofthe pads, but they were the expensive kind, so theink was already starting to absorb.
If Eleanorâs clothes werenât in that locker, ifshe was wearing anything other than this gym-suit, she would have just walked away.
Instead she walked past the girls, with herchin as high as she could manage, and
97/593
methodically peeled the pads off her locker.There were even some inside, stuck to herclothes.
Eleanor cried a little bit, she couldnât help it,but she kept her back to everybody so therewouldnât be a show. It was all over in a fewminutes anyway because nobody wanted to belate to lunch. Most of the girls still had to changeand redo their hair.
After everyone else walked away, two blackgirls stayed. They walked over to Eleanor andstarted pulling pads off the wall. âAinât no thing,âone of the girls whispered, crumpling a pad into aball. Her name was DeNice, and she looked tooyoung to be in the tenth grade. She was small,and she wore her hair in two braided pigtails.
Eleanor shook her head, but didnât sayanything.
âThose girls are trifling,â DeNice said.âTheyâre so insignificant, God can hardly seethem.â
98/593
âHmm-hmm,â the other girl agreed. Eleanorwas pretty sure her name was Beebi. Beebi waswhat Eleanorâs mom would call âa big girl.âMuch bigger than Eleanor. Beebiâs gymsuit waseven a different color than everybody elseâs, liketheyâd had to special order it for her. Whichmade Eleanor feel bad about feeling so bad abouther own body ⦠And which also made her won-der why she was the official fat girl in the class.
They threw the pads in the trash and pushedthem under some wet paper towels so thatnobody would find them.
If DeNice and Beebi hadnât been standingthere, Eleanor might have kept some of the pads,the ones that didnât have any writing on them be-cause, God, what a waste.
She was late to lunch, then late to English.And if she didnât know already that she liked thatstupid effing Asian kid, she knew it now.
Because even after everything that hadhappened in the last forty-five minutes â andeverything that had happened in the last twenty-
99/593
four hours â all Eleanor could think about wasseeing Park.
Park
When they got back on the bus, she took hisWalkman without arguing. And without makinghim put it on for her. At the stop before hers, shehanded it back.
âYou can borrow it,â he said quietly. âListento the rest of the tape.â
âI donât want to break it,â she said.âYouâre not going to break it.ââI donât want to use up the batteries.ââI donât care about the batteries.âShe looked up at him then, in the eye, maybe
for the first time ever. Her hair looked even crazi-er than it had this morning â more frizzy thancurly, like she was working on a big red afro. Buther eyes were dead serious, cold sober. Anycliché youâve ever heard used to describe ClintEastwood, those were Eleanorâs eyes.
100/593
âReally,â she said. âYou donât care.ââTheyâre just batteries,â he said.She emptied the batteries and the tape from
Parkâs Walkman, handed it back to him, then gotoff the bus without looking back.
God, she was weird.
Eleanor
The batteries started to die at 1:00 a.m., butEleanor kept listening for another hour until thevoices slowed to a stop.
101/593
CHAPTER 13
Eleanor
She remembered her books today, and she waswearing fresh clothes. Sheâd had to wash herjeans out in the bathtub last night, so they werestill kind of damp ⦠But altogether, Eleanor felta thousand times better than she had yesterday.Even her hair was halfway cooperating. Sheâdclumped it up into a bun and wrapped it with arubber band. It was going to hurt like crazy tryingto tear the rubber band out, but at least it wasstaying for now.
Best of all, she had Parkâs songs in her head âand in her chest, somehow.
There was something about the music on thattape. It felt different. Like, it set her lungs andher stomach on edge. There was something
exciting about it, and something nervous. It madeEleanor feel like everything, like the world,wasnât what sheâd thought it was. And that was agood thing. That was the greatest thing.
When she got on the bus that morning, sheimmediately lifted her head to find Park. He waslooking up too, like he was waiting for her. Shecouldnât help it, she grinned. Just for a second.
As soon as she sat down, Eleanor slunk lowin the seat, so the back-of-the-bus ruffianswouldnât be able to see from the top of her headhow happy she felt.
She could feel Park sitting next to her, eventhough he was at least six inches away.
She handed him yesterdayâs comics, thentugged nervously at the green ribbon woundround her wrist. She couldnât think of what tosay. She started to worry that maybe shewouldnât say anything, that she wouldnât eventhank him â¦
Parkâs hands were perfectly still in his lap.And perfectly perfect. Honey-colored with clean,
103/593
pink fingernails. Everything about him wasstrong and slender. Every time he moved he hada reason.
They were almost to school when he brokethe silence.
âDid you listen?âShe nodded, letting her eyes climb as high as
his shoulders.âDid you like it?â he asked.She rolled her eyes. âOh my God. It was â¦
just, like â¦â â she spread out all her fingers â âsoawesome.â
âAre you being sarcastic? I canât tell.âShe looked up at his face, even though she
knew how that was going to feel, like someonewas hooking her insides out through her chest.
âNo. It was awesome. I didnât want to stoplistening. That one song â is it âLove Will TearUs Apartâ?â
âYeah, Joy Division.ââOh my God, thatâs the best beginning to a
song ever.â
104/593
He imitated the guitar and the drums.âYeah, yeah, yeah,â she said. âI just wanted to
listen to those three seconds over and over.ââYou could have.â His eyes were smiling, his
mouth only sort of.âI didnât want to waste the batteries,â she said.He shook his head, like she was dumb.âPlus,â she said, âI love the rest of it just as
much, like the high part, the melody, the dahhh,dah-de-dah-dah, de-dahh, de dahhh.â
He nodded.âAnd his voice at the end,â she said, âwhen he
goes just a little bit too high ⦠And then the veryend, where it sounds like the drums are fightingit, like they donât want the song to be over â¦â
Park made drum noises with his mouth: âch-ch-ch, ch-ch-ch.â
âI just want to break that song into pieces,âshe said, âand love them all to death.â
That made him laugh.âWhat about the Smiths?â he asked.âI didnât know who was who,â she said.
105/593
âIâll write it down for you.ââI liked it all.ââGood,â he said.âI loved it.âHe smiled, but turned away to look out the
window. She looked down.They were pulling into the parking lot. Elean-
or didnât want this new talking thing â like, reallytalking, back and forth and smiling at each otherâ to stop.
âAnd â¦â she said quickly, âI love the X-Men.But I hate Cyclops.â
He whipped his head back.âYou canât hate Cyclops. Heâs team captain.ââHeâs boring. Heâs worse than Batman.ââWhat? You hate Batman?ââGod. So boring. I canât even make myself
read it. Whenever you bring Batman, I catch my-self listening to Steve, or staring out the window,wishing I was in hypersleep.â The bus came to astop.
106/593
âHuh,â Park said, standing up. He said itreally judgmentally.
âWhat?ââNow I know what youâre thinking when you
stare out the window.ââNo, you donât,â she said. âI mix it up.âEverybody else was pushing down the aisle
past them. Eleanor stood up, too.âIâm bringing you The Dark Knight Returns,â
he said.âWhatâs that?ââOnly the least boring Batman story ever.ââThe least boring Batman story ever, huh?
Does Batman raise both eyebrows?âHe laughed again. His face completely
changed when he laughed. He didnât havedimples, exactly, but the sides of his face foldedin on themselves, and his eyes almostdisappeared.
âJust wait,â he said.
Park
107/593
That morning, in English, Park noticed thatEleanorâs hair came to a soft red point on theback of her neck.
Eleanor
That afternoon, in history, Eleanor noticed thatPark chewed on his pencil when he was thinking.And that the girl sitting behind him â whatâs hername, Kim, with the giant breasts and the orangeEsprit bag â obviously had a crush on him.
Park
That night, Park made a tape with the Joy Divi-sion song on it, over and over again.
He emptied all his handheld video games andJoshâs remote-control cars, and called hisgrandma to tell her that all he wanted for hisbirthday in November was double-A batteries.
108/593
CHAPTER 14
Eleanor
âI know she doesnât think Iâm going to jump overthat thing,â DeNice said.
DeNice and the other girl, the big girl, Beebi,talked to Eleanor now in gym. (Because being as-saulted with maxi pads is a great way to winfriends and influence people.)
Today in class, their gym teacher, Mrs Burt,had shown them how to swing over a thousand-year-old gymnastics horse. She said that nexttime everybody had to try.
âShe has got another thing coming,â DeNicesaid after class, in the locker room. âDo I looklike Mary Lou Retton?â
Beebi giggled. âBetter tell her you didnât eatyour Wheaties.â
Actually, Eleanor thought, DeNice did kindof look like a gymnast. With her little-girl bangsand braids. She looked way too young to be inhigh school, and her clothes just made it worse.Puffed-sleeve shirts, overalls, matching ponytailballs ⦠She wore her gymsuit baggy, like aromper.
Eleanor wasnât scared of the horse, but shedidnât want to have to run down the mats with thewhole class watching her. She didnât want to run,period. It made her breasts feel like they were go-ing to detach from her body.
âIâm going to tell Mrs Burt that my momdoesnât want me to do anything that might rup-ture my hymen,â Eleanor said. âFor religiousreasons.â
âFor real?â Beebi asked.âNo,â Eleanor said, giggling. âWell. Actually
â¦ââYouâre nasty,â DeNice said, hitching up her
overalls.
110/593
Eleanor put her T-shirt on over her head thenwriggled out of her gymsuit, using the shirt ascover.
âAre you coming?â DeNice asked.âWell, Iâm probably not going to start skip-
ping class now just because of gymnastics,âEleanor said, hopping to pull up her jeans.
âNo, are you coming to lunch?ââOh,â Eleanor said, looking up. They were
waiting for her at the end of the lockers. âYeah.ââThen hurry up, Miss Jackson.âShe sat with DeNice and Beebi at their usual
table by the windows. During passing period,Eleanor saw Park walk by.
Park
âWhy canât you get your driverâs license byhomecoming?â Cal asked.
Mr Stessman had them in small groups. Theywere supposed to be comparing Juliet to Ophelia.
111/593
âBecause I canât bend time and space,â Parksaid. Eleanor was sitting across the room by thewindows. She was paired up with a guy namedEric, a basketball player. He was talking, andEleanor was frowning at him.
âIf you had your car,â Cal said, âwe could askKim.â
âYou can ask Kim,â Park said.Eric was one of those tall guys who always
walked with his shoulders about a foot behind hiships. Constantly doing the limbo. Like he wasafraid to hit his head on every door jamb.
âShe wants to go with a group,â Cal said.âPlus I think she likes you.â
âWhat? I donât want to go to homecomingwith Kim. I donât even like her. I mean, youknow ⦠You like her.â
âI know. Thatâs why the plan works. We allgo to homecoming together. She figures out youdonât like her, sheâs miserable, and guess whoâsstanding right there, asking her to slow dance?â
âI donât want to make Kim miserable.â
112/593
âItâs her or me, man.âEric said something else, and Eleanor
frowned again. Then she looked over at Park âand stopped frowning. Park smiled.
âOne minute,â Mr Stessman said.âCrap,â Cal said. âWhat have we got â¦
Ophelia was bonkers, right? And Juliet was what,a sixth-grader?â
Eleanor
âSo Psylocke is another girl telepath?ââUh-huh,â Park said.Every morning when Eleanor got on the bus,
she worried that Park wouldnât take off his head-phones. That he would stop talking to her as sud-denly as heâd started ⦠And if that happened â ifshe got on the bus one day and he didnât look upâ she didnât want him to see how devastated itwould make her.
So far, it hadnât happened.
113/593
So far, they hadnât stopped talking. Like, lit-erally. They talked every second they were sittingnext to each other. And almost every conversa-tion started with the words âwhat do you thinkâ¦â
What did Eleanor think about that U2 album?She loved it.
What did Park think of Miami Vice? Hethought it was boring.
âYes,â they said when they agreed with eachother. Back and forth â âYes,â âYes,â âYes!â
âI know.ââExactly.ââRight?âThey agreed about everything important and
argued about everything else. And that was good,too, because whenever they argued, Eleanorcould always crack Park up.
âWhy do the X-Men need another girl tele-path?â she asked.
âThis one has purple hair.ââItâs all so sexist.â
114/593
Parkâs eyes got wide. Well, sort of wide. So-metimes she wondered if the shape of his eyes af-fected how he saw things. That was probably themost racist question of all time.
âThe X-Men arenât sexist,â he said, shakinghis head. âTheyâre a metaphor for acceptance;theyâve sworn to protect a world that hates andfears them.â
âYeah,â she said, âbut â¦ââThereâs no but,â he said, laughing.âBut,â Eleanor insisted, âthe girls are all so
stereotypically girly and passive. Half of themjust think really hard. Like thatâs their super-power, thinking. And Shadowcatâs power is evenworse â she disappears.â
âShe becomes intangible,â Park said. âThatâsdifferent.â
âItâs still something you could do in themiddle of a tea party,â Eleanor said.
âNot if you were holding hot tea. Plus, youâreforgetting Storm.â
115/593
âIâm not forgetting Storm. She controls theweather with her head; itâs still just thinking.Which is about all she could do in those boots.â
âShe has a cool Mohawk â¦â Park said.âIrrelevant,â Eleanor answered.Park leaned his head back against the seat,
smiling, and looked at the ceiling. âThe X-Menarenât sexist.â
âAre you trying to think of an empowered X-woman?â Eleanor asked. âHow about Dazzler?Sheâs a living disco ball. Or the White Queen?She thinks really hard while wearing spotlesswhite lingerie.â
âWhat kind of power would you want?â heasked, changing the subject. He turned his facetoward her, laying his cheek against the top of theseat. Smiling.
âIâd want to fly,â Eleanor said, looking awayfrom him. âI know itâs not very useful, but ⦠itâsflying.â
âYes,â he said.
116/593
Park
âDamn, Park, are you going on a Ninja mission?ââNinjas wear black, Steve.ââWhat?âPark should have gone inside to change after
taekwando, but his dad said he had to be back by9:00, and that gave him less than an hour to showEleanor.
Steve was outside working on his Camaro.He didnât have his license yet either, but he wasgetting ready.
âGoing to see your girlfriend?â he called toPark.
âWhat?ââSneaking out to see your girlfriend? Bloody
Mary?ââSheâs not my girlfriend,â Park said, then
swallowed.âSneaking out Ninja-style,â Steve said.Park shook his head and broke into a run.
Well, she wasnât, he thought to himself, cuttingthrough the alley.
117/593
He didnât know where Eleanor lived, exactly.He knew where she got on the bus, and he knewthat she lived next to the school â¦
It must be this one, he thought. He stopped ata small white house. There were a few brokentoys in the yard, and a giant Rottweiler wasasleep on the porch.
Park walked toward the house slowly. Thedog lifted its head and watched him for a second,then settled back to sleep. It didnât move, evenwhen Park climbed the steps and knocked on thedoor.
The guy who answered looked too young tobe Eleanorâs dad. Park was pretty sure heâd seenthis guy around the neighborhood. He didnâtknow who heâd expected to come to the door.Somebody more exotic. Somebody more like her.
The guy didnât even say anything. Just stoodat the door and waited.
âIs Eleanor home?â Park asked.âWho wants to know?â He had a nose like a
knife, and he looked straight down it at Park.
118/593
âWe go to school together,â Park said.The guy looked at Park for another second,
then closed the door. Park wasnât sure what todo. He waited for a few minutes, then right as hewas thinking about leaving, Eleanor opened thedoor just enough to slide through.
Her eyes were round with alarm. In the darklike this, it didnât even look like she had irises.
As soon as he saw her, he knew it had been amistake to come here â he felt like he shouldhave known that sooner. Heâd been so caught upin showing her â¦
âHey,â he said.âHi.ââI â¦ââ⦠came to challenge me in hand-to-hand
combat?âPark reached into the front of his dobak and
pulled out the second issue of Watchmen. Herface lit up; she was so pale, so luminous underthe street light, that wasnât just an expression.
âHave you read it?â she asked.
119/593
He shook his head. âI thought we could â¦together.â
Eleanor glanced back at the house, thenstepped quickly off the steps. He followed herdown the steps, across the gravel driveway, to theback stoop of the elementary school. There was abig safety light over the door. Eleanor sat on thetop step, and Park sat next to her.
It took twice as long to read Watchmen as itdid any other comic, and it took even longer to-night because it was so strange to be sitting to-gether somewhere other than on the bus. To evensee each other outside of school. Eleanorâs hairwas wet and hanging in long, dark curls aroundher face.
When they got to the last page, all Parkwanted to do was sit and talk about it. (All hereally wanted to do was sit and talk to Eleanor.)But she was already standing up and lookingback at her house.
âIâve got to go,â she said.âOh,â he said. âOkay. I guess I do, too.â
120/593
She left him sitting on the elementary schoolsteps. She was disappearing inside the house be-fore he could think about saying goodbye.
Eleanor
When she walked back into the house, the livingroom was dark, but the TV was on. Eleanor couldsee Richie sitting on the couch and her momstanding in the doorway of the kitchen.
It was just a few steps to her room â¦âIs that your boyfriend?â Richie asked before
she made it. He didnât look up from the TV.âNo,â she said. âHeâs just a boy from school.ââWhat did he want?ââTo talk to me about an assignment.âShe waited in her bedroom doorway. Then,
when Richie didnât say anything more, shestepped inside, shutting the door behind her.
âI know what youâre up to,â he said, raisinghis voice, just as the door closed. âNothing but abitch in heat.â
121/593
Eleanor let his words hit her full on. Tookthem right on the chin.
She climbed into bed and clenched her eyesand jaw and fists â held everything clenched untilshe could breathe without screaming.
Until this moment, sheâd kept Park in a placein her head that she thought Richie couldnât getto. Completely separate from this house andeverything that happened here. (It was a prettyawesome place. Like the only part of her head fitfor praying.)
But now Richie was in there, just pissing allover everything. Making everything she felt feelas rank and rotten as him.
Now she couldnât think about Park â¦About the way he looked in the dark, dressed
in white, like a superhero.About the way he smelled, like sweat and bar
soap.About the way he smiled when he liked
something, with his lips just turned up at thecorners â¦
122/593
Without feeling Richie leer.She kicked the cat out of the bed, just to be
mean. He squawked, but jumped right back up.âEleanor,â Maisie whispered from the bottom
bunk, âwas that your boyfriend?âEleanor crushed her teeth together. âNo,â she
whispered back viciously. âHeâs just a boy.â
123/593
CHAPTER 15
Eleanor
Her mother stood in the bedroom the next morn-ing while Eleanor got ready. âHere,â shewhispered, taking the hairbrush and drawingEleanorâs hair into a ponytail without brushingout the curl.
âEleanor â¦â she said.âI know why youâre in here,â Eleanor said,
pulling away. âI donât want to talk about it.ââJust listen.ââNo. I know. He wonât come back, okay? I
didnât invite him, but Iâll tell him, and he wonâtcome back.â
âOkay, well ⦠good,â her mom said, foldingher arms, still whispering. âItâs just that youâre soyoung.â
âNo,â Eleanor said, âthatâs not what it is. Butit doesnât even matter. He wonât come back,okay? It isnât even like that anyway.â
Her mom left the room. Richie was still in thehouse. Eleanor ran out the front door when sheheard him turn on the bathroom sink.
Itâs not even like that, she thought as shewalked to the bus stop. And thinking it made herwant to cry, because she knew it was true.
And wanting to cry just made her angry.Because if she was going to cry about
something, it was going to be the fact that her lifewas complete shit â not because some cool, cuteguy didnât like her like that.
Especially when just being Parkâs friend waspretty much the best thing that had ever happenedto her.
She must have looked ticked off when she goton the bus because Park didnât say hi when shesat down.
Eleanor looked into the aisle.
125/593
After a few seconds, he reached over andpulled at the old silk scarf sheâd tied around herwrist.
âIâm sorry,â he said.âFor what?â She even sounded angry. God,
she was a jerk.âI donât know,â he said. âI feel like maybe I
got you in trouble last night â¦âHe pulled on the scarf again, so she looked at
him. She tried not to look mad â but sheâd ratherlook mad than look like sheâd spent all nightthinking about how beautiful his lips are.
âWas that your dad?â he asked.She jerked her head back. âNo. No, that was
my ⦠motherâs husband. Heâs not really my any-thing. My problem, I guess.â
âDid you get in trouble?ââSort of.â She really didnât want to talk to
Park about Richie. Sheâd just about scraped allthe Richie off the Park place in her head.
âIâm sorry,â he said again.
126/593
âItâs okay,â she said. âIt wasnât your fault.Anyway, thanks for bringing Watchmen. Iâm gladI got to read it.â
âIt was cool, huh?ââOh, yeah. Kind of brutal. I mean that part
with the Comedian â¦ââYeah ⦠sorry.ââNo, I didnât mean that. I mean ⦠I think I
need to reread it.ââI read it again twice last night. You can take
it tonight.ââYeah? Thanks.âHe was still holding the end of her scarf, rub-
bing the silk idly between his thumb and fingers.She watched his hand.
If he were to look up at her now, heâd knowexactly how stupid she was. She could feel herface go soft and gummy. If Park were to look upat her now, heâd know everything.
He didnât look up. He wound the scarf aroundhis fingers until her hand was hanging in thespace between them.
127/593
Then he slid the silk and his fingers into heropen palm.
And Eleanor disintegrated.
Park
Holding Eleanorâs hand was like holding a but-terfly. Or a heartbeat. Like holding somethingcomplete, and completely alive.
As soon as he touched her, he wondered howheâd gone this long without doing it. He rubbedhis thumb through her palm and up her fingers,and was aware of her every breath.
Park had held hands with girls before. Girls atSkateland. A girl at the ninth-grade dance lastyear. (Theyâd kissed while they waited for herdad to pick them up.) Heâd even held Tinaâshand, back when they âwentâ together in the sixthgrade.
And always, before, it had been fine. Notmuch different from holding Joshâs hand whenthey were little kids crossing the street. Or
128/593
holding his grandmaâs hand when she took himto church. Maybe a little sweatier, a little moreawkward.
When heâd kissed that girl last year, with hismouth dry and his eyes mostly open, Park hadwondered if maybe there was something wrongwith him.
Heâd even wondered â seriously, while hewas kissing her, heâd wondered this â whether hemight be gay. Except he didnât feel like kissingany guys either. And if he thought about She-Hulk or Storm (instead of this girl, Dawn) thekissing got a lot better.
Maybe Iâm not attracted to real girls, heâdthought at the time. Maybe Iâm some sort ofperverted cartoon-sexual.
Or maybe, he thought now, he just didnât re-cognize all those other girls. The way a computerdrive will spit out a disk if it doesnât recognizethe formatting.
When he touched Eleanorâs hand, he recog-nized her. He knew.
129/593
Eleanor
Disintegrated.Like something had gone wrong beaming her
onto the Starship Enterprise.If youâve ever wondered what that feels like,
itâs a lot like melting â but more violent.Even in a million different pieces, Eleanor
could still feel Park holding her hand. Could stillfeel his thumb exploring her palm. She sat com-pletely still because she didnât have any other op-tion. She tried to remember what kind of animalsparalyzed their prey before they ate them â¦
Maybe Park had paralyzed her with his ninjamagic, his Vulcan handhold, and now he was go-ing to eat her.
That would be awesome.
Park
They broke apart when the bus stopped. A floodof reality rushed through Park, and he lookedaround nervously to see if anyone had been
130/593
watching them. Then he looked nervously atEleanor to see if sheâd noticed him looking.
She was still staring at the floor, even as shepicked up her books and stood in the aisle.
If someone had been watching, what wouldthey have seen? Park couldnât imagine what hisface had looked like when he touched Eleanor.Like somebody taking the first drink in a DietPepsi commercial. Over-the-top bliss.
He stood behind her in the aisle. She was justabout his height. Her hair was pulled up, and herneck was flushed and splotchy. He resisted theurge to lay his cheek against it.
He walked with her all the way to her locker,and leaned against the wall as she opened it. Shedidnât say anything, just shifted some books ontothe shelf and took down a few others.
As the buzz of touching her faded, he wasstarting to realize that Eleanor hadnât actuallydone anything to touch him back. She hadnât benther fingers around his. She hadnât even looked athim. She still hadnât looked at him. Jesus.
131/593
He knocked gently on her locker door.âHey,â he said.She shut the door. âHey, what?ââOkay?â he asked.She nodded.âIâll see you in English?â he asked.She nodded and walked away.Jesus.
Eleanor
All through first and second and third hour,Eleanor rubbed her palm.
Nothing happened.How could it be possible that there were that
many nerve endings all in one place?And were they always there, or did they just
flip on whenever they felt like it? Because, ifthey were always there, how did she manage toturn doorknobs without fainting?
Maybe this was why so many people said itfelt better to drive a stick shift.
132/593
Park
Jesus. Was it possible to rape somebodyâs hand?Eleanor wouldnât look at Park during English
and history. He went to her locker after school,but she wasnât there.
When he got on the bus, she was already sit-ting in their seat â but sitting in his spot, againstthe wall. He was too embarrassed to say any-thing. He sat down next to her and let his handshang between his knees â¦
Which meant she really had to reach for hiswrist, to pull his hand into hers. She wrapped herfingers around his and touched his palm with herthumb.
Her fingers were trembling.Park shifted in his seat and turned his back to
the aisle.âOkay?â she whispered.He nodded, taking a deep breath. They both
stared down at their hands.Jesus.
133/593
CHAPTER 16
Eleanor
Saturdays were the worst.On Sundays, Eleanor could think all day
about how close it was to Monday. But Saturdayswere ten years long.
Sheâd already finished her homework. Somecreep had written âdo i make you wet?â on hergeography book, so she spent a really long timecovering it up with a black ink pen. She tried toturn it into some kind of flower.
She watched cartoons with the little kids untilgolf came on, then played double solitaire withMaisie until they were both bored stupid.
Later, sheâd listen to music. Sheâd saved thelast two batteries Park had given her so that shecould listen to her tape player today when she
missed him most. She had five tapes from himnow â which meant, if her batteries lasted, shehad four hundred and fifty minutes to spend withPark in her head, holding his hand.
Maybe it was stupid, but thatâs what she didwith him, even in her fantasies â even where any-thing was possible. As far as Eleanor was con-cerned, that just showed how wonderful it was tohold Parkâs hand.
(Besides they didnât just hold hands. Parktouched her hands like they were something rareand precious, like her fingers were intimatelyconnected to the rest of her body. Which, ofcourse, they were. It was hard to explain. Hemade her feel like more than the sum of herparts.)
The only bad thing about their new busroutine was that it had seriously cut back on theirconversations. She could hardly look at Parkwhen he was touching her. And Park seemed tohave a hard time finishing his sentences. (Whichmeant he liked her. Ha.)
135/593
Yesterday, on the way home from school,their bus had to take a fifteen-minute detour be-cause of a busted sewer pipe. Steve had startedcussing about how he needed to get to his newjob at the gas station. And Park had said, âWow.â
âWhat?â Eleanor sat by the wall now, becauseit made her feel safer, less exposed. She could al-most pretend that they had the bus to themselves.
âI can actually burst sewers with my mind,âPark said.
âThatâs a very limited mutation,â she said.âWhat do they call you?â
âThey call me ⦠um â¦â And then heâd star-ted laughing and pulled at one of her curls. (Thatwas a new, awesome development â the hairtouching. Sometimes heâd come up behind herafter school, and tug at her ponytail or tap the topof her bun.)
âI ⦠donât know what they call me,â he said.âMaybe the Public Works,â she said, laying
her hand on top of his, finger to finger. Her
136/593
fingertips came to his last knuckle. It might bethe only part of her that was smaller than him.
âYouâre like a little girl,â he said.âWhat do you mean?ââYour hands. They just look â¦â He took her
hand in both of his. âI donât know ⦠vulnerable.ââPipemaster,â she whispered.âWhat?ââThatâs your superhero name. No, wait â the
Piper. Like, âTime to pay the Piper!ââHe laughed and pulled at another curl.That was the most talking theyâd done in two
weeks. Sheâd started to write him a letter â sheâdstarted it a million times â but that seemed likesuch a seventh-grade thing to do. What could shewrite?
âDear Park, I like you. You have really cutehair.â
He did have really cute hair. Really, really.Short in the back, but kind of long and fanned outin the front. It was completely straight and almostcompletely black, which, on Park, seemed like a
137/593
lifestyle choice. He always wore black, practic-ally head to toe. Black punk rock T-shirts overblack thermal long-sleeved shirts. Black sneak-ers. Blue jeans. Almost all black, almost everyday. (He did have one white T-shirt, but it saidâBlack Flagâ on the front in big, black letters.)
Whenever Eleanor wore black, her mom saidthat she looked like she was going to a funeral âin a coffin. Anyway, her mom used to say stufflike that, back when she occasionally noticedwhat Eleanor was wearing. Eleanor had taken allthe safety pins from her momâs sewing kit andused them to pin scraps of silk and velvet overthe holes in her jeans, and her mom hadnât evenmentioned it.
Park looked good in black. It made him looklike he was drawn in charcoal. Thick, arched,black eyebrows. Short, black lashes. High, shin-ing cheeks.
âDear Park, I like you so much. You havereally beautiful cheeks.â
138/593
The only thing she didnât like to think about,about Park, was what he could possibly see inher.
Park
The pick-up kept dying.Parkâs dad wasnât saying anything, but Park
knew he was getting pissed.âTry again,â his dad said. âJust listen to the
engine, then shift.âThat was an oversimplification if Park had
ever heard one. Listen to the engine, depress theclutch, shift, gas, release, steer, check your mir-rors, signal your turn, look twice for motorcyclesâ¦
The crappy part was that he was pretty surehe could do it if his dad wasnât sitting there, fum-ing. Park could see himself doing it in his headjust fine.
139/593
It was like this at taekwando sometimes, too.Park could never master something new if hisdad was the one teaching it.
Clutch, shift, gas.The pick-up died.âYouâre thinking too much,â his dad snapped.Which is what his dad always said. When
Park was a kid, heâd try to argue with him. âIcanât help but think,â Park would say during taek-wando. âI canât turn off my brain.â
âIf you fight like that, somebodyâs going toturn it off for you.â
Clutch, shift, grind.âStart it again ⦠Now donât think, just shift
⦠I said, donât think.âThe truck died again. Park put his hands at
ten and two and laid his head on the steeringwheel, bracing himself. His dad was radiatingfrustration.
âGoddamn, Park, I donât know what to dowith you. Weâve been working on this for a year.I taught your brother to drive in two weeks.â
140/593
If his mom were here, she would have calledfoul at this. âYou donât do that,â sheâd say. âTwoboys. Different.â
And his dad would grit his teeth.âI guess Josh doesnât have any trouble not
thinking,â Park said.âCall your brother stupid all you want,â his
dad said. âHe can drive a manual transmission.ââBut Iâm only ever gonna get to drive the Im-
pala,â Park muttered into the dash, âand itâs anautomatic.â
âThat isnât the point,â his dad half shouted. IfParkâs mom were here, she would have said,âHey, mister, I donât think so. You go outside andyell at sky, you so angry.â
What did it say about Park that he wished hismom would follow him around defending him?
That he was a pussy.Thatâs what his dad thought. Itâs probably
what he was thinking now. He was probably be-ing so quiet because he was trying not to say itout loud.
141/593
âTry it again,â his dad said.âNo, Iâm done.ââYouâre done when I say youâre done.ââNo,â Park said, âIâm done now.ââWell, Iâm not driving us home. Try it again.âPark started the truck. It died. His dad
slammed his giant hand against the glove box.Park opened the truck door and jumped to theground. His dad shouted his name, but Park keptwalking. They were only a couple miles fromhome.
If his dad drove by him on the way home,Park didnât notice. When he got back to hisneighborhood, at dusk, Park turned down Elean-orâs street instead of his own. There were twolittle reddish-blond kids playing in her yard, eventhough it was kind of cold.
He couldnât see into the house. Maybe if hestood here long enough, sheâd look out the win-dow. Park just wanted to see her face. Her bigbrown eyes, her full pink lips. Her mouth kind oflooked like the Jokerâs â depending on who was
142/593
drawing him â really wide and curvy. Notpsychotic, obviously ⦠Park should never tellher this. It definitely didnât sound like acompliment.
Eleanor didnât look out the window. But thekids were staring at him, so Park walked home.
Saturdays were the worst.
143/593
CHAPTER 17
Eleanor
Mondays were the best.Today, when she got on the bus, Park actually
smiled at her. Like, smiled at her the whole timeshe was walking down the aisle.
Eleanor couldnât bring herself to smile dir-ectly back at him, not in front of everybody. Butshe couldnât help but smile, so she smiled at thefloor and looked up every few seconds to seewhether he was still looking at her.
He was.Tina was looking at her, too, but Eleanor ig-
nored her.Park stood up when she got to their row, and
as soon as she sat down, he took her hand and
kissed it. It happened so fast, she didnât havetime to die of ecstasy or embarrassment.
She let her face fall for just a few secondsagainst his shoulder, against the sleeve of hisblack trench coat. He squeezed her hand tight.
âI missed you,â he whispered. She felt tears inher eyes and turned to the window.
They didnât say anything more all the way toschool. Park walked with Eleanor to her locker,and they both stood there quietly, leaning againstthe wall almost until the bell rang. The hall waspractically empty.
Then Park reached up and wrapped one of herred curls around his honey finger.
âBack to missing you,â he said, letting it go.
She was late to homeroom and didnât hear MrSarpy tell her that she had an office pass. Heslammed it on her desk.
âEleanor, wake up! Youâve got a pass fromyour counselor.â God, he was a jerk, she was gladshe didnât have him for a real class. As shewalked to the office, she trailed her fingertips
145/593
along the brick wall and hummed a song Parkhad given her.
She was so blissed out, she even smiled atMrs Dunne when she got to her office.
âEleanor,â she said, hugging her. Mrs Dunnewas big on hugging. Sheâd hugged Eleanor thevery first time they met. âHow are you?â
âIâm good.ââYou look good,â Mrs Dunne said.Eleanor looked down at her sweater (a very
fat man had probably bought it to wear golfing in1968) and at her holey jeans. God, how bad didshe usually look? âThanks, I guess.â
âIâve been talking to your teachers,â MrsDunne said. âDid you know youâre getting As inalmost all your classes?â
Eleanor shrugged. She didnât have cable or aphone, and she felt like she was living under-ground in her own house ⦠There was plenty oftime for homework.
âWell, you are,â Mrs Dunne said. âAnd Iâm soproud of you.â
146/593
Eleanor was glad there was a desk betweenthem now. Mrs Dunne looked like she had anoth-er hug coming on.
âBut thatâs not why I called you down here.The reason youâre here is because I got a tele-phone call for you this morning, before schoolstarted. A man called â he said that he was yourdad â and that he was calling here because hedidnât have your home number â¦â
âI donât actually have a home number,âEleanor said.
âAh,â Mrs Dunne said, âI see. Would yourdad know that?â
âProbably not,â Eleanor said. She was sur-prised he even knew what school she went to.
âWould you like to call him? You could usemy office.â
Would she like to call him? Why would hewant to call her? Maybe something horrible(something really horrible) had happened. Maybeher grandma had died. God.
âSure â¦â Eleanor said.
147/593
âYou know,â Mrs Dunne said, âyou can comeuse my phone whenever you need to.â She stoodup and sat on the edge of her desk, resting herhand on Eleanorâs knee. Eleanor was this close toasking for a toothbrush, but she thought thatwould lead to a marathon of hugging and knee-rubbing.
âThanks,â Eleanor said instead.âOkay,â Mrs Dunne said, beaming. âIâll be
right back then. Iâll just go freshen up mylipstick.â
When Mrs Dunne left, Eleanor dialed herdadâs number, surprised that she still knew it byheart. He answered after the third ring.
âHey, Dad. Itâs Eleanor.ââHey, baby, how are you?âShe thought for a second about telling him
the truth. âFine,â she said.âHowâs everybody?ââFine.ââYou guys never call.â
148/593
There was no use telling him that they didnâthave a phone. Or pointing out that he nevercalled them back when they did have a phone. Oreven saying that maybe he should find a way totalk to them, him being the one with a phone anda car and a life of his own.
There was no use telling her dad anything.Eleanor had known that for so long, she couldnâteven remember figuring it out.
âHey, Iâve got a cool offer for you,â he said.âI thought maybe you could come over on Fridaynight.â Her dad had a voice like someone on TV,somebody who would try to sell you record com-pilations. Disco hits of the â70s or the latestTime-Life collection.
âDonna wants me to go to some wedding,â hesaid, âand I told her you would probably watchMatt. Thought you might like some babysittingmoney.â
âWhoâs Donna?ââYou know, Donna â Donna my fiancée. You
guys met her the last time you were here.â
149/593
That was almost a year ago. âYour neighbor?âEleanor asked.
âYeah, Donna. You can come over and spendthe night. Watch Matt, eat pizza, talk on thephone ⦠It will be the easiest ten bucks you evermade.â
And actually the first.âOkay,â Eleanor said. âAre you picking us
up? Do you know where we live now?ââIâll pick you up at school â just you this
time. I donât want to give you a whole house fullof kids to watch. What time do they let you out ofthere?â
âThree.ââCool. Iâll see you Friday at three.ââAll right.ââWell, all right. I love you, baby, study hard.âMrs Dunne was waiting in the doorway, with
her arms open.Fine, Eleanor thought as she walked down the
hall. Everything is fine. Everyone is fine. She
150/593
kissed the back of her hand, just to see how it felton her lips.
Park
âIâm not going to homecoming,â Park said.âOf course youâre not going ⦠To the
dance,â Cal said. âI mean, itâs way too late to renta tux anyways.â
They were early to English class. Cal sat twoseats behind him, so Park kept having to lookback over his shoulder to see if Eleanor hadwalked in yet.
âYouâre renting a tux?â Park asked.âUh, yeah,â Cal said.âNobody rents a tux for homecoming.ââSo whoâs going to look like the classiest guy
there? Besides, what do you know â youâre noteven going â to the dance, that is. The footballgame, however? Different story.â
âI donât even like football,â Park said, lookingback at the door.
151/593
âCould you stop being the worst friend in theworld for, like, five minutes?â
Park looked up at the clock. âYes.ââPlease,â Cal said, âdo me this one favor.
Thereâs a whole group of cool people going, andif you go, Kim will sit with us. Youâre a Kimmagnet.â
âDonât you see what a problem that is?ââNo. Itâs like Iâve found the perfect bait for
my Kim trap.ââStop saying her name like that.ââWhy? Sheâs not here yet, is she?âPark glanced over his shoulder. âCanât you
just like a girl who likes you back?ââNone of them like me back,â Cal said. âI may
as well like the one I really want. Come on,please. Come to the game on Friday â for me.â
âI donât know â¦â Park said.âWow, whatâs up with her. She looks like she
just killed somebody for fun.âPark whipped his head around. Eleanor. Smil-
ing at him.
152/593
She had the kind of smile you see in tooth-paste commercials, where you can see practicallyall of somebodyâs teeth. She should smile likethat all the time, Park thought; it made her facecross over from weird to beautiful. He wanted tomake her smile like that constantly.
Mr Stessman pretended to fall against thechalkboard when he walked in. âGood God,Eleanor, stop. Youâre blinding me. Is that whyyou keep that smile locked away, because itâs toopowerful for mortal man?â
She looked down self-consciously andflattened her smile into a smirk.
âPsst,â Cal said. Kim was sitting downbetween them. Cal locked his fingers togetherlike he was begging. Park sighed and nodded hishead.
Eleanor
She waited for the phone call from her dad to gosour on her. (Conversations with her dad were
153/593
like whiplash; they didnât always hurt rightaway.)
But it didnât. Nothing could bring Eleanordown. Nothing could drive Parkâs words fromher head.
He missed her â¦Who knows what he missed. Her fatness. Her
weirdness. The fact that she couldnât talk to himlike a regular person. Whatever. Whatever per-version caused him to like her was his problem.But he did like her, she was sure of it.
At least for now.For today.He liked her. He missed her.She was so distracted in gym class, she actu-
ally forgot not to try. They were playing basket-ball, and Eleanor caught the ball, colliding withone of Tinaâs friends, a jumpy, wiry girl namedAnnette. âAre you trying to start something?â An-nette demanded, pushing forward â pushing theball into Eleanorâs chest. âAre you? Come on,then, letâs go. Come on.â Eleanor took a few
154/593
steps back, out of bounds, and waited for MrsBurt to blow the whistle.
Annette stayed mad for the rest of the game,but Eleanor didnât let it get to her.
That feeling she used to have when she wassitting next to Park on the bus â that feeling thatshe was on base, that she was safe for the mo-ment â she could summon it now. Like a forcefield. Like she was the Invisible Girl.
That would make Park Mr Fantastic.
155/593
CHAPTER 18
Eleanor
Her mom wasnât going to let her babysit.âHe has four children,â her mother said. She
was rolling out dough for tortillas. âDid he forgetthat?
Eleanor had stupidly told her mother abouther dadâs phone call in front of her brothers andsister â theyâd all gotten really excited. And thenEleanor had to tell them that they werenât invited,that it was just babysitting, anyway, and that Dadwasnât even going to be there.
Mouse had started to cry, and Maisie got madand stormed out. Ben asked Eleanor if sheâd callDad back to see if he could come along to help.âTell him I babysit all the time,â Ben said.
âYour father is a piece of work,â her mothersaid. âEvery time, he breaks your hearts. Andevery time, he expects me to pick up the pieces.â
Pick up, sweep aside â same difference in hermomâs world. Eleanor didnât argue.
âPlease let me go,â she said.âWhy do you want to go?â her mom asked.
âWhy do you even care about him? Heâs nevercared about you.â
God. Even if it were true, it still hurt to hear itthat way.
âI donât care,â Eleanor said. âI just need to getout of here. I havenât been anywhere but schoolin two months. Plus, he said heâd pay me.â
âIf he has extra money sitting around, maybehe should pay his child support.â
âMom ⦠itâs ten dollars. Please.âHer mother sighed. âFine. Iâll talk to Richie.ââNo. Donât talk to Richie. Heâll just say no.
And, anyway, he canât tell me that I canât see myfather.â
157/593
âRichie is the head of this household,â hermom said. âRichie is the one who puts food onour table.â
What food? Eleanor wanted to ask. And, forthat matter, what table? They ate on the couch oron the floor or sitting on the back steps holdingpaper plates. Besides, Richie would say no justfor the pleasure of saying it. It would make himfeel like the King of Spain. Which was probablywhy her mom wanted to give him the chance.
âMom.â Eleanor put her face in her hand andleaned against the refrigerator. âPlease.â
âOh, fine,â her mother said bitterly. âFine. Butif he gives you any money, you can split it withyour brothers and sister. Thatâs the least you cando.â
They could have it all. All Eleanor wantedwas the chance to talk to Park on the phone. Tobe able to talk to him without every inbred hells-pawn in the Flats listening.
158/593
The next morning on the bus, while Park ran hisfinger along the inside of her bracelet, Eleanorasked him for his phone number.
He started laughing.âWhy is that funny?â she asked.âBecause,â he said quietly. They said
everything quietly, even though everyone else onthe bus roared, even though youâd have to shoutinto a megaphone to be heard over all the cursingand idiocy. âI feel like youâre hitting on me,â hesaid.
âMaybe I shouldnât ask for your number,â shesaid. âYouâve never asked for mine.â
He looked up at her through his bangs.âI figured you werenât allowed to talk on the
phone ⦠after that time with your stepdad.ââI probably wouldnât be, if I had a phone.â
She usually tried not to tell Park things like that.Like, all the things she didnât have. She waitedfor him to react, but he didnât. He just ran histhumb along the veins in her wrist.
âThen why do you want my number?â
159/593
God, she thought, never mind. âYou donâthave to give it to me.â
He rolled his eyes and got a pen out of hisbackpack, then reached over and took one of herbooks.
âNo,â she whispered, âdonât. I donât want mymom to see it.â
He frowned at her book. âIâd think youâd bemore worried about her seeing this.â
Eleanor looked down. Crap. Whoever wrotethat gross thing on her geography book had writ-ten on her history book, too.
âsuck me off,â it said, in ugly blue letters.She grabbed Parkâs pen and started scribbling
it out.âWhy would you write that?â he asked. âIs
that a song?ââI didnât write it,â she said. She could feel
patches of red creep up her neck.âThen who did?â
160/593
She gave him the meanest look she was cap-able of. (It was hard to look at him with anythingother than gooey eyes.)
âI donât know,â she said.âWhy would anyone write that?ââI donât know.â She pulled her books against
her chest and wrapped her arms around them.âHey,â he said.Eleanor ignored him and looked out the win-
dow. She couldnât believe sheâd let him see thaton her book. It was one thing to let him see hercrazy life a little bit at a time ⦠So, yeah, I havea terrible stepdad, and I donât have a phone, andsometimes when weâre out of dish soap I washmy hair with flea and tick shampoo â¦
It was another thing to remind him that shewas that girl. She may as well invite him to gymclass. She might as well give him an alphabeticallist of all the names they called her.
A â Ass, FatB â Bitch, Red-Headed
161/593
Heâd probably try to ask her why she was thatgirl.
âHey,â he said.She shook her head.It wouldnât do any good to tell him that she
hadnât been that girl at her old school. Yeah,sheâd been made fun of before. There were al-ways mean boys â and there were always, alwaysmean girls â but sheâd had friends at her oldschool. Sheâd had people to eat lunch with andpass notes to. People used to pick her to be ontheir team in gym class just because they thoughtshe was nice and funny.
âEleanor â¦â he said.But there was no one like Park at her old
school.There was no one like Park anywhere.âWhat,â she said to the window.âHowâre you going to call me if you donât
have my number?ââWho said I was going to call you?â She
hugged her books.
162/593
He leaned against her, pressing his shoulderinto hers.
âDonât be mad at me,â he said, sighing. âItmakes me crazy.â
âIâm never mad at you,â she said.âRight.ââIâm not.ââYou must just be mad near me a lot.âShe pushed her shoulder against his and
smiled despite herself.âIâm babysitting at my dadâs house Friday
night,â she said, âand he said I could use thephone.â
Park turned his face eagerly. It was painfullyclose to hers. She could kiss him â or head-butthim â before heâd ever have a chance to pullaway. âYeah?â he asked.
âYeah.ââYeah,â he said, smiling. âBut you wonât let
me write down my number?ââTell me,â she said. âIâll memorize it.ââLet me write it down.â
163/593
âIâll memorize it to the tune of a song, so thatI donât forget.â
He started singing his number to the tune ofâ867-5309,â which cracked her right up.
Park
Park tried to remember the first time he saw her.Because he could remember, on that day, see-
ing what everybody else saw. He could remem-ber thinking that she was asking for it â¦
That it was bad enough to have curly red hair.That it was bad enough to have a face shaped likea box of chocolates.
No, he hadnât thought exactly that. Heâdthought â¦
That it was bad enough to have a millionfreckles and chubby baby cheeks.
God, she had adorable cheeks. Dimples ontop of freckles, which shouldnât even be allowed,and round as crabapples. It was kind of amazingthat more people didnât try to pinch her cheeks.
164/593
His grandma was definitely going to pinch herwhen they met.
But Park hadnât thought that either, the firsttime he saw Eleanor on the bus. He rememberedthinking that it was bad enough that she lookedthe way she did â¦
Did she have to dress like that? And act likethat? Did she have to try so hard to be different?
He remembered feeling embarrassed for her.And now â¦Now, he felt the fight rising up in his throat
whenever he thought of people making fun ofher.
When he thought of someone writing thatugly thing on her book ⦠it made him feel likeBill Bixby just before he turned into the Hulk.
It had been so hard, on the bus, to pretendthat it didnât bother him. He didnât want to makeanything worse for her â heâd put his hands in hispockets and pressed them into fists, and heldthem that way all morning long.
165/593
All morning long, heâd wanted to punchsomething. Or kick something. Park had gymclass right after lunch, and he ran so hard duringdrills, heâd started to retch up his fish sandwich.
Mr Koenig, his gym teacher, made him leaveclass early and take a shower. âHit the bricks,Sheridan. Now. This isnât Chariots of FuckinâFire.â
Park wished it was only righteous anger thathe felt. He wished that he could feel defensiveand protective of Eleanor without feeling â¦everything else.
Without feeling like they were making fun ofhim, too.
There were moments â not just today, mo-ments every day since theyâd met â when Eleanormade him self-conscious, when he saw peopletalking and he was sure they were talking aboutthem. Raucous moments on the bus when he wassure that everyone was laughing at them.
And in those moments, Park thought aboutpulling back from her.
166/593
Not breaking up with her. That phrase didnâteven seem to apply here. Just ⦠easing away.Recovering the six inches between them.
Heâd roll the thought over in his head untilthe next time he saw her.
In class, at her desk. On the bus, waiting forhim. Reading alone in the cafeteria.
Whenever he saw Eleanor, he couldnât thinkabout pulling away. He couldnât think about any-thing at all.
Except touching her.Except doing whatever he could or had to, to
make her happy.
âWhat do you mean youâre not coming tonight?âCal said.
They were in study hall, and Cal was eating aSnack Pack butterscotch pudding. Park tried tokeep his voice down. âSomething came up.â
âSomething?â Cal said, slamming his spooninto his pudding. âLike you being completelylame â is that what came up? Because that comesup a lot lately.â
167/593
âNo. Something. Like, a girl something.âCal leaned in. âYouâve got a girl something?âPark felt himself blush. âSort of. Yeah. I canât
really talk about it.ââBut we had a plan,â Cal said.âYou had a plan,â Park said, âand it was
terrible.ââWorst friend in the world,â Cal said.
Eleanor
She was so nervous, she couldnât even touch herlunch. She gave DeNice her creamed turkey andBeebi her fruit cocktail.
Park made her practice his phone number allthe way home.
And then he wrote it on her book anyway. Hehid it in song titles.
âForever Young.ââThatâs a four,â he said. âWill you
remember?â
168/593
âI wonât have to,â she said, âI already knowyour number by heart.â
âAnd this is just a five,â he said, âbecause Icanât think of any five songs, and this oneâ ââSummer of â69â â âWith this one, remember thesix, but forget the nine.â
âI hate that song.ââGod, I know ⦠Hey, I canât think of any two
songs.âââTwo of Us,ââ she said.âTwo of us?ââItâs a Beatles song.ââOh ⦠thatâs why I donât know it.â He wrote
it down.âI know your number by heart,â she said.âIâm just afraid youâre going to forget it,â he
said quietly. He pushed her hair out of her eyeswith his pen.
âIâm not going to forget it,â she said. Ever.Sheâd probably scream out Parkâs number on herdeathbed. Or have it tattooed over her heart when
169/593
he finally got sick of her. âIâm good withnumbers.â
âIf you donât call me Friday night,â he said,âbecause you canât remember my number â¦â
âHow about this, Iâll give you my dadâs num-ber, and if I havenât called you by nine, you cancall me.â
âThatâs an excellent idea,â he said,âseriously.â
âBut you canât call it any other time.ââI feel like â¦â He started laughing and
looked away.âWhat?â she asked. She elbowed him.âI feel like we have a date,â he said. âIs that
stupid?ââNo,â she said.âEven though weâre together every day â¦ââWeâre never really together,â she said.âItâs like we have fifty chaperones.ââHostile chaperones,â Eleanor whispered.âYeah,â Park said.
170/593
He put his pen in his pocket, then took herhand and held it to his chest for a minute.
It was the nicest thing she could imagine. Itmade her want to have his babies and give himboth of her kidneys.
âA date,â he said.âPractically.â
171/593
CHAPTER 19
Eleanor
When she woke up that morning, she felt like itwas her birthday â like she used to feel on herbirthday, back when there was a shot in hell ofice cream.
Maybe her dad would have ice cream ⦠If hedid, heâd probably throw it away before Eleanorgot there. He was always dropping hints abouther weight. Well, he used to, anyway. Maybewhen he stopped caring about her altogether,heâd stopped caring about that, too.
Eleanor put on an old striped menâs shirt andhad her mom tie one of her ties â like knot it, forreal â around her neck.
Her mom actually kissed Eleanor goodbye atthe door and told her to have fun, and to call theneighbors if things got weird with her dad.
Right, Eleanor thought, Iâll be sure to call youif Dadâs fiancée calls me a bitch and then makesme use a bathroom without a door. Oh wait â¦
She was a little nervous. It had been a year, atleast, since sheâd seen her dad, and a while be-fore that. He hadnât called at all when she livedwith the Hickmans. Maybe he didnât know shewas there. She never told him.
When Richie first started coming around, Benused to get really angry and say he was going tomove in with their dad â which was an empty eff-ing promise, and everyone knew it. Even Mouse,who was just a toddler.
Their dad couldnât stand having them evenfor a few days. He used to pick them up fromtheir momâs house, then drop them off at hismomâs house while he went off and did whateverit was that he did on the weekend. (Presumably,lots and lots of marijuana.)
173/593
Park cracked up when he saw Eleanorâs tie.That was even better than making him smile.
âI didnât know we were getting dressed up,âhe said when she sat down next to him.
âIâm expecting you to take me someplacenice,â she said softly.
âI will â¦â he said. He took the tie in bothhands and straightened it. âSomeday.â
He was a lot more likely to say stuff like thaton the way to school than he was on the wayhome. Sometimes she wondered if he was fullyawake.
He turned practically sideways in his seat.âSo youâre leaving right after school?â
âYeah.ââAnd youâll call me as soon as you get there
â¦ââNo, Iâll call you as soon as the kid settles
down. I really do have to babysit.ââIâm going to ask you a lot of personal ques-
tions,â he said, leaning forward. âI have a list.ââIâm not afraid of your list.â
174/593
âItâs extremely long,â he said, âand extremelypersonal.â
âI hope youâre not expecting answers â¦âHe sat back in the seat and looked over at her.
âI wish youâd go away,â he whispered, âso thatwe could finally talk.â
Eleanor stood on the front steps after school.Sheâd hoped to catch Park before he got on thebus, but she must have missed him.
She wasnât sure what kind of car to watchfor; her dad was always buying classic cars, thenselling them when money got tight.
She was starting to worry that he wasnât com-ing at all â he couldâve gone to the wrong highschool or changed his mind â when he honkedfor her.
He pulled up in an old Karmann Ghia con-vertible. It looked like the car James Dean diedin. Her dadâs arm was hanging over the door,holding a cigarette. âEleanor!â he shouted.
She walked to the car and got in. There wer-enât any seat belts.
175/593
âIs that all you brought?â he asked, looking ather school bag.
âItâs just one night.â She shrugged.âAll right,â he said, backing out of the parking
space too fast. Sheâd forgotten what a crappydriver he was. He did everything too fast andone-handed.
Eleanor braced herself on the dashboard. Itwas cold out, and once they were driving, it gotcolder. âCan we put the top up?â she shouted.
âHavenât fixed it yet,â her dad said, andlaughed.
He still lived in the same duplex heâd lived insince her parents split up. It was solid and brick,and about a ten-minute drive from Eleanorâsschool.
When they got inside, he took a better look ather.
âIs that what all the cool kids are wearingthese days?â he asked. She looked down at her gi-ant white shirt, her fat paisley tie and her half-dead purple corduroys.
176/593
âYup,â she said flatly. âThis is pretty muchour uniform.â
Her dadâs girlfriend â fiancée â Donna, didnâtget off work until five, and after that she had topick her kid up from daycare. In the meantime,Eleanor and her dad sat on the couch andwatched ESPN.
He smoked cigarette after cigarette, andsipped Scotch out of a short glass. Every once ina while the phone would ring, and heâd have along, laughy conversation with somebody about acar or a deal or a bet. Youâd think that everysingle person who called was his best friend inthe whole world. Her dad had baby blond hairand a round, boyish face. When he smiled, whichwas constantly, his whole face lit up like a bill-board. If Eleanor paid too much attention, shehated him.
His duplex had changed since the last timesheâd been here, and it was more than just thebox of Fisher Price toys in the living room andthe makeup in the bathroom.
177/593
When theyâd first started visiting him here âafter the divorce, but before Richie â their dadâsduplex had been a bare-bones bachelor pad. Hedidnât even have enough bowls for them all tohave soup. Heâd served Eleanor clam chowderonce in a highball glass. And he only had twotowels. âOne wet,â heâd said, âone dry.â
Now Eleanor fixated on all the small luxuriesstrewn and tucked around the house. Packs of ci-garettes, newspapers, magazines ⦠Brand-namecereal and quilted toilet paper. His refrigeratorwas full of things you tossed into the cart withoutthinking about it just because they sounded good.Custard-style yogurt. Grapefruit juice. Littleround cheeses individually wrapped in red wax.
She couldnât wait for her dad to leave so thatshe could start eating everything. There werestacks of Coca-Cola cans in the pantry. She wasgoing to drink Coke like water all night, shemight even wash her face with it. And she wasgoing to order a pizza. Unless the pizza came outof her babysitting money. (That would be just
178/593
like her dad. Heâd take you to the cleaners withfine print.) Eleanor didnât care if eating all hisfood pissed him off or if it freaked out Donna.She might never see either of them againanyway.
Now she wished she had brought anovernight bag. She could have snuck home cansof Chef Boyardee and Campbellâs chickennoodle soup for the little kids. She would havefelt like Santa Claus when she came home â¦
She didnât want to think about the little kidsright now. Or Christmas.
She tried to turn the station to MTV, but herdad frowned at her. He was on the phone again.
âCan I listen to records?â she whispered.He nodded.She had an old mix tape in her pocket, and
she was going to dub over it to make a tape forPark. But there was a whole packet of emptyMaxell tapes sitting on her dadâs stereo. Eleanorheld a cassette up to her dad, and he nodded,
179/593
flicking his cigarette into an ashtray shaped like anaked African woman.
Eleanor sat down in front of the crates full ofrecord albums.
These used to be both of her parentsâ records,not just his. Her mom must not have wanted anyof them. Or maybe her dad just took themwithout asking.
Her mom had loved this Bonnie Raitt album.Eleanor wondered if her dad ever listened to it.
She felt seven years old, flipping throughtheir records.
Before she was allowed to take the albumsout of their sleeves, Eleanor used to lay them outon the floor and stare at the artwork. When shewas old enough, her dad taught her how to dustthe records with a wood-handled velvet brush.
She could remember her mother lighting in-cense and putting on her favorite records â JudeeSill and Judy Collins and Crosby, Stills and Nashâ while she cleaned the house.
180/593
She could remember her dad putting on re-cords â Jimi Hendrix and Deep Purple and JethroTull â when his friends came over and stayed lateinto the night.
Eleanor could remember lying on her stom-ach on an old Persian rug, drinking grape juiceout of a jelly jar, being extra quiet because herbaby brother was asleep in the next room â andstudying each record, one by one. Turning theirnames over and over in her mouth. Cream.Vanilla Fudge. Canned Heat.
The records smelled exactly like they alwayshad. Like her dadâs bedroom. Like Richieâs coat.Like pot, Eleanor realized. Duh. She flippedthrough the records more matter-of-factly now,on a mission. Looking for Rubber Soul andRevolver.
Sometimes it seemed as if she would never beable to give Park anything like what heâd givenher. It was like he dumped all this treasure on herevery morning without even thinking about it,without any sense of what it was worth.
181/593
She couldnât repay him. She couldnât evenappropriately thank him. How can you thanksomeone for The Cure? Or the X-Men? Some-times it felt like sheâd always be in his debt.
And then she realized that Park didnât knowabout the Beatles.
Park
Park went to the playground to play basketballafter school. Just to kill time. But he couldnât fo-cus on the game â he kept looking up at the backof Eleanorâs house.
When he got home, he called out to his mom.âMom! Iâm home!â
âPark,â she called. âOut here! In the garage.âHe grabbed a cherry Popsicle out of the freez-
er and headed out there. He could smell thepermanent-wave solution as soon as he openedthe door.
Parkâs dad had converted their garage into asalon when Josh started kindergarten and their
182/593
mom went to beauty school. She even had a littlesign hanging by the side door. âMindyâs Hair &Nails.â
âMin-Dae,â it said on her driverâs license.Everyone in the neighborhood who could af-
ford a hair stylist came to Parkâs mom. On home-coming and prom weekends, sheâd spend all dayin the garage. Both Park and Josh were recruitedfrom time to time to hold hot curling irons.
Today, his mom had Tina sitting in her chair.Tinaâs hair was wound tight in rollers, and Parkâsmom was squeezing something onto them with aplastic bottle. The smell burned his eyes.
âHey, Mom,â he said. âHey, Tina.ââHey, honey,â his mom said. She pronounced
it with two ânâs.Tina smiled broadly at him. âClose eyes, Ti-
na,â his mom said. âStay close.ââHey, Mrs Sheridan,â Tina said, holding a
white washcloth over her eyes, âhave you metParkâs girlfriend yet?â
183/593
His mom didnât look up from Tinaâs head.âNooo,â she said, clucking her tongue. âNo girl-friend. Not Park.â
âUh-huh,â Tina said. âTell her, Park â hername is Eleanor, and sheâs new this year. Wecanât keep them apart on the bus.â
Park stared at Tina. Shocked that sheâd sellhim out like this. Startled by her rosy take on buslife. Surprised that she was even paying attentionto him, and to Eleanor. His mom looked over atPark, but not for long; Tinaâs hair was at a critic-al stage.
âI donât know about any girlfriend,â his momsaid.
âIâll bet youâve seen her in the neighbor-hood,â Tina said, assuring. âShe has really pretty,red hair. Naturally curly.â
âIs that right?â his mom said.âNo,â Park said, anger and everything else
curdling in his stomach.âYouâre such a guy, Park,â Tina said from be-
hind the washcloth. âIâm sure itâs natural.â
184/593
âNo,â he said, âsheâs not my girlfriend. I donâthave a girlfriend,â he said to his mom.
âOkay, okay,â she said. âToo much girl talkfor you. Too much girl talk, Ti-na. You go checkon dinner now,â she said to Park.
He backed out of the garage, still wanting toargue, feeling more denial twitching in his throat.He slammed the door, then went into the kitchenand slammed as much as he could in there. Theoven. The cabinets. The trash.
âWhat the hell is wrong with you?â his dadsaid, walking into the kitchen.
Park froze. He could not get into troubletonight.
âNothing,â he said. âSorry. Iâm sorry.ââJesus, Park, take it out on the bag â¦â There
was an old-school punching bag in the garage,hanging way out of Parkâs reach.
âMindy!â his dad shouted.âOut here!â
Eleanor didnât call during dinner, which wasgood. That got on his dadâs nerves.
185/593
But she didnât call after dinner either. Parkwalked around the house, picking things up ran-domly, then setting them down. Even though itdidnât make sense, he worried that Eleanorwasnât calling because heâd betrayed her. Thatshe knew somehow, that sheâd sensed a disturb-ance in the Force.
The phone rang at 7:15, and his momanswered it. He could tell right away that it washis grandma.
Park tapped his fingers on a bookshelf. Whydidnât his parents want call waiting? Everyonehad call waiting. His grandparents had call wait-ing. And why couldnât his grandma just comeover, if she wanted to talk? They lived right nextdoor.
âNo, I donât think so,â his mother said. âSixtyMinutes always on Sunday ⦠Maybe you thinkof Twenty-Twenty? No? ⦠John Stos-sel? No?⦠Geraldo Rivera? Di-anne Sawyer?â
Park gently banged his head against the livingroom wall.
186/593
âGod damn it, Park,â his dad snapped, âwhatis wrong with you?â
His dad and Josh were trying to watch The A-Team.
âNothing,â Park said, ânothing. Iâm sorry. Iâmjust waiting for a phone call.â
âIs your girlfriend calling?â Josh asked.âParkâs dating Big Red.â
âSheâs notââ Park caught himself shoutingand clenched his fists. âIf I ever hear you call herthat again, Iâll kill you. Iâll literally kill you. Iâllgo to jail for the rest of my life, and itâll breakMomâs heart, but I will. Kill. You.â
His dad looked at Park like he always did,like he was trying to figure out what the fuck waswrong with him.
âPark has a girlfriend?â he asked Josh. âWhydo they call her Big Red?â
âI think itâs because she has red hair and gianttits,â Josh said.
187/593
âNo way, dirty mouth,â their mother said. Sheheld her hand over the phone. âYouâ â she poin-ted at Josh â âin your room. Now.â
âBut, Mom, The A-Team is on.ââYou heard your mother,â their dad said.
âYou donât get to talk like that in this house.ââYou talk like that,â Josh said, dragging him-
self off the couch.âIâm thirty-nine years old,â their dad said,
âand a decorated veteran. Iâll say whatever thehell I want.â
Their mother jabbed a long fingernail at hisdad and covered the phone again. âIâll send youto your room, too.â
âHoney, I wish you would,â their dad said,throwing a throw pillow at her.
âHugh Downs?â Parkâs mom said into thephone. The pillow fell on the floor and shepicked it up. âNo? ⦠Okay, Iâll keep thinking.Okay. Love you. Okay, bye-bye.â
188/593
As soon as she hung up, the phone rang. Parksprung away from the wall. His dad grinned athim. His mom answered the phone.
âHello?â she said. âYes, one moment please.âShe looked at Park. âTelephone.â
âCan I take it in my room?âHis mom nodded. His dad mouthed, âBig
Red.âPark ran into his room, then stopped to catch
his breath before he picked up the phone. Hecouldnât. He picked it up anyway.
âI got it, Mom, thanks.âHe waited for the click. âHello?ââHi,â Eleanor said. He felt all of the tension
rush out of him. Without it, he could hardly standup.
âHi,â he breathed.She giggled.âWhat?â he said.âI donât know,â she said. âHi.ââI didnât think you were going to call.ââItâs not even 7:30.â
189/593
âYeah, well ⦠is your brother asleep?ââHeâs not my brother,â she said. âI mean, not
yet. I guess my dadâs engaged to his mom. But,no, heâs not asleep. Heâs watching FraggleRock.â
Park carefully picked up the phone and car-ried it to his bed. He sat down gently. He didnâtwant her to hear anything. He didnât want her toknow he had a twin-sized waterbed and a phoneshaped like a Ferrari.
âWhat time is your dad coming home?â heasked.
âLate, I hope. They said they almost never geta babysitter.â
âCool.âShe giggled again.âWhat?â he asked.âI donât know,â she said, âI feel like youâre
whispering in my ear.ââIâm always whispering in your ear,â he said,
lying back on his pillows.
190/593
âYeah, but itâs usually about, like, Magnetoor something.â Her voice was higher on thephone, and richer, like he was listening to it onheadphones.
âIâm not going to say anything tonight that Icould say on the bus or during English class,â hesaid.
âAnd Iâm not going to say anything that Icanât say in front of a three-year-old.â
âNice.ââIâm just kidding. Heâs in the other room, and
heâs totally ignoring me.ââSo â¦â Park said.âSo â¦â she said, â⦠things we canât say on
the bus.ââThings we canât say on the bus â go.ââI hate those people,â she said.He laughed, then thought of Tina and was
glad that Eleanor couldnât see his face. âMe, too,sometimes. I mean, I guess Iâm used to them.Iâve known most of them my whole life. Steveâsmy next-door neighbor.â
191/593
âHow did that happen?ââWhat do you mean?â he asked.âI mean, you donât seem like youâre from
there â¦ââBecause Iâm Korean?ââYouâre Korean?ââHalf.ââI guess I donât really know what that means.ââMe neither,â he said.âWhat do you mean? Are you adopted?ââNo. My momâs from Korea. She just doesnât
talk about it very much.ââHow did she end up in the Flats?ââMy dad. He served in Korea, they fell in
love, and he brought her back.ââWow, really?ââYeah.ââThatâs pretty romantic.âEleanor didnât know the half of it; his parents
were probably making out right now. âI guessso,â he said.
192/593
âThatâs not what I meant though. I meant â¦that youâre different from the other people in theneighborhood, you know?â
Of course he knew. Theyâd all been tellinghim so his whole life. When Tina liked Park in-stead of Steve in grade school, Steve had said, âIthink she feels safe with you because youâre likehalf girl.â Park hated football. He cried when hisdad took him pheasant hunting. Nobody in theneighborhood could ever tell who he was dressedas on Halloween. (âIâm Doctor Who.â âIâm HarpoMarx.â âIâm Count Floyd.â) And he kind ofwanted his mom to give him blond highlights.Park knew he was different.
âNo,â he said. âI donât know.ââYou â¦â she said, âyouâre so ⦠cool.â
Eleanor
âCool?â he said.God. She couldnât believe sheâd said that.
Talk about uncool. Like the opposite of cool.
193/593
Like, if you looked up âcoolâ in the dictionary,thereâd be a photo of some cool person there say-ing, âWhat the eff is wrong with you, Eleanor?â
âIâm not cool,â he said. âYouâre cool.ââHa,â she said. âI wish I were drinking milk,
and I wish you were here, so that you couldwatch it shoot out my nose in response to that.â
âAre you kidding me?â he said. âYouâre DirtyHarry.â
âIâm dirty hairy?ââLike Clint Eastwood, you know?ââNo.ââYou donât care what anyone thinks about
you,â he said.âThatâs crazy,â she said. âI care what every-
one thinks about me.ââI canât tell,â he said. âYou just seem like
yourself, no matter whatâs happening around you.My grandmother would say youâre comfortablein your own skin.â
âWhy would she say that?ââBecause thatâs how she talks.â
194/593
âIâm stuck in my own skin,â Eleanor said.âAnd why are we even talking about me? Wewere talking about you.â
âIâd rather talk about you,â he said. His voicedropped a little. It was nice to hear just his voiceand nothing else. (Nothing besides Fraggle Rockin the next room.) His voice was deeper thansheâd ever realized, but sort of warm in themiddle. He kind of reminded her of Peter Gabri-el. Not singing, obviously. And not with a Britishaccent.
âWhere did you come from?â he asked.âThe future.â
Park
Eleanor had an answer for everything â but shestill managed to evade most of Parkâs questions.
She wouldnât talk about her family or herhouse. She wouldnât talk about anything thathappened before she moved to the neighborhood
195/593
or anything that happened after she got off thebus.
When her sort-of stepbrother fell asleeparound nine, she asked Park to call her back infifteen minutes, so she could put the kid to bed.
Park hurried to the bathroom and hoped thathe wouldnât run into either of his parents. So farthey were leaving him alone.
He got back to his room. He checked theclock ⦠eight more minutes. He put a tape in hisstereo. He changed into pajama pants and a T-shirt.
He called her back.âIt so hasnât been fifteen minutes,â she said.âI couldnât wait. Do you want me to call you
back?ââNo.â Her voice was even softer now.âDid he stay asleep?ââYeah,â she said.âWhere are you now?ââLike, where in the house?ââYeah, where.â
196/593
âWhy?â she asked, with something justgentler than disdain.
âBecause Iâm thinking about you,â he said,exasperated.
âSo?ââBecause I want to feel like Iâm with you,â he
said. âWhy do you make everything so hard?ââProbably because Iâm so cool â¦â she said.âHa.ââIâm lying on the floor in the living room,â
she said faintly. âIn front of the stereo.ââIn the dark? It sounds dark.ââIn the dark, yeah.âHe lay back on his bed again and covered his
eyes with his arm. He could see her. In his head.He imagined green lights on a stereo. Streetlights through a window. He imagined her faceglowing, the coolest light in the room.
âIs that U2?â he asked. He could hear âBadâ inthe background.
âYeah, I think itâs my favorite song rightnow. I keep rewinding it, and playing it over and
197/593
over again. Itâs nice not to have to worry aboutbatteries.â
âWhatâs your favorite part?ââOf the song?ââYeah.ââAll of it,â she said, âespecially the chorus â I
mean, I guess itâs the chorus.ââIâm wide awake,â he half sang.âYeah â¦â she said, softly.He kept singing then. Because he wasnât sure
what to say next.
Eleanor
âEleanor?â Park said.She didnât answer.âAre you there?âShe was so out of it, she actually nodded her
head. âYes,â she said out loud, catching herself.âWhat are you thinking?ââIâm thinking â Iâm â Iâm not thinking.ââNot thinking in a good way? Or a bad way?â
198/593
âI donât know,â she said. She rolled over ontoher stomach, and pressed her face into the carpet.âBoth.â
He was quiet. She listened to him breathe.She wanted to ask him to hold the phone closer tohis mouth.
âI miss you,â she said.âIâm right here.ââI wish you were here. Or that I was there. I
wish that there was some chance of talking likethis after tonight, or seeing each other. Like,really seeing each other. Of being alone,together.â
âWhy canât there be?â he asked.She laughed. Thatâs when she realized she
was crying.âEleanor â¦ââStop. Donât say my name like that. It only
makes it worse.ââMakes what worse?ââEverything,â she said.He was quiet.
199/593
She sat up and wiped her nose on her sleeve.âDo you have a nickname?â he asked. That
was one of his tricks, whenever she was put offor irritated â changing the subject in the sweetestway possible.
âYeah,â she said, âEleanor.ââNot Nora? Or Ella? Or ⦠Lena, you could
be Lena. Or Lenny or Elle â¦ââAre you trying to give me a nickname?ââNo, I love your name. I donât want to cheat
myself out of a single syllable.ââYouâre such a dork.â She wiped her eyes.âEleanor â¦â he said, âwhy canât we see each
other?ââGod,â she said, âdonât. Iâd almost stopped
crying.ââTell me. Talk to me.ââBecause,â she said, âbecause my stepdad
would kill me.ââWhy does he care?ââHe doesnât care. He just wants to kill me.ââWhy?â
200/593
âStop asking that,â she said angrily. Therewas no stopping the tears now. âYou always askthat. Why. Like thereâs an answer for everything.Not everybody has your life, you know, or yourfamily. In your life, things happen for reasons.People make sense. But thatâs not my life.Nobody in my life makes sense â¦â
âNot even me?â he asked.âHa. Especially not you.ââWhy would you say that?â He sounded hurt.
What did he have to be hurt about?âWhy, why, why â¦â she said.âYeah,â he said, âwhy. Why are you always so
mad at me?ââIâm never mad at you.â It came out a sob. He
was so stupid.âYou are,â he said. âYouâre mad at me right
now. You always turn on me, just when we startto get somewhere.â
âGet where?ââSomewhere,â he said. âWith each other.
Like, a few minutes ago, you said you missed
201/593
me. And for maybe the first time ever, you didnâtsound sarcastic or defensive or like you think Iâman idiot. And now youâre yelling at me.â
âIâm not yelling.ââYouâre mad,â he said. âWhy are you mad?âShe didnât want him to hear her cry. She held
her breath. That made it worse.âEleanor â¦â he said.Even worse.âStop saying that.ââWhat can I say then? You can ask me why,
you know. I promise Iâll have answers.âHe sounded frustrated with her, but not
angry. She could remember him sounding angrywith her only once. The first day she got on thebus.
âYou can ask me why,â he said again.âYeah?â She sniffed.âYeah.ââOkay.â She looked down at the turntable, at
her own reflection in the tinted acrylic lid. She
202/593
looked like a fat-faced ghost. She closed hereyes.
âWhy do you even like me?â
Park
He opened his eyes.He sat up, stood up, started pacing around his
small room. He went to stand by the window âthe one that faced her house, even though it was ablock away and she wasnât home â holding thebase of the car phone against his stomach.
Sheâd asked him to explain something hecouldnât even explain to himself.
âI donât like you,â he said. âI need you.âHe waited for her to cut him down. To say
âHaâ or âGodâ or âYou sound like a Bread song.âBut she was quiet.He crawled back onto the bed, not caring
whether she heard it swish. âYou can ask me whyI need you,â he whispered. He didnât even haveto whisper. On the phone, in the dark, he just had
203/593
to move his lips and breathe. âBut I donât know. Ijust know that I do â¦
âI miss you, Eleanor. I want to be with you allthe time. Youâre the smartest girl Iâve ever met,and the funniest, and everything you do surprisesme. And I wish I could say that those are thereasons I like you, because that would make mesound like a really evolved human being â¦
âBut I think itâs got as much to do with yourhair being red and your hands being soft ⦠andthe fact that you smell like homemade birthdaycake.â
He waited for her to say something. Shedidnât.
Someone knocked softly on his door.âJust a second,â he whispered into the phone.
âYeah?â he said.His mom opened his door, just enough to
push her head through. âNot too late,â she said.âNot too late,â he said. She smiled and shut
the door.âIâm back,â he said. âAre you there?â
204/593
âIâm here,â Eleanor said.âSay something.ââI donât know what to say.ââSay something, so that I donât feel so
stupid.ââDonât feel stupid, Park,â she said.âNice.âThey were both quiet.âAsk me why I like you,â she finally said.He felt himself smile. He felt like something
warm had spilled in his chest.âEleanor,â he said, just because he liked say-
ing it, âwhy do you like me?ââI donât like you.âHe waited. And waited â¦Then he started to laugh. âYouâre kind of
mean,â he said.âDonât laugh. It just encourages me.âHe could hear that she was smiling, too. He
could picture her. Smiling.âI donât like you, Park,â she said again. âI â¦â
She stopped. âI canât do this.â
205/593
âWhy not?ââItâs embarrassing.ââSo far, just for me.ââIâm afraid Iâll say too much,â she said.âYou canât.ââIâm afraid Iâll tell you the truth.ââEleanor â¦ââPark.ââYou donât like me â¦â he said, leading her,
pressing the base of the phone into his lowest rib.âI donât like you, Park,â she said, sounding
for a second like she actually meant it. âI â¦â âher voice nearly disappeared â âsometimes Ithink I live for you.â
He closed his eyes and arched his head backinto his pillow.
âI donât think I even breathe when weâre nottogether,â she whispered. âWhich means, when Isee you on Monday morning, itâs been like sixtyhours since Iâve taken a breath. Thatâs probablywhy Iâm so crabby, and why I snap at you. All Ido when weâre apart is think about you, and all I
206/593
do when weâre together is panic. Because everysecond feels so important. And because Iâm soout of control, I canât help myself. Iâm not evenmine anymore, Iâm yours, and what if you decidethat you donât want me? How could you want melike I want you?â
He was quiet. He wanted everything sheâdjust said to be the last thing he heard. He wantedto fall asleep with âI want youâ in his ears.
âGod,â she said. âI told you I shouldnât talk. Ididnât even answer your question.â
Eleanor
She hadnât even said anything nice about him.She hadnât told him that he was prettier than anygirl, and that his skin was like sunshine with asuntan.
And thatâs exactly why she hadnât said it. Be-cause all her feelings for him â hot and beautifulin her heart â turned to gobbledygook in hermouth.
207/593
She flipped the tape and pressed play, andwaited for Robert Smith to start singing beforeshe climbed up onto her dadâs brown leathercouch.
âWhy canât I see you?â Park asked. His voicesounded raw and pure. Like something justhatched.
âBecause my stepfather is crazy.ââDoes he have to know?ââMy mom will tell him.ââDoes she have to know?ââEleanor ran her fingers along the edge of the
glass coffee table. âWhat do you mean?ââI donât know what I mean. I just know that I
need to see you. Like this.ââIâm not even allowed to talk to boys.ââUntil when?ââI donât know, never. This is one of those
things that doesnât make sense. My mom doesnâtwant to do anything that could possibly irritatemy stepfather. And my stepfather gets off on be-ing mean. Especially to me. He hates me.â
208/593
âWhy?ââBecause I hate him.ââWhy?âShe wanted, badly, to change the subject, but
she didnât.âBecause heâs a bad person. Just ⦠trust me.
Heâs the kind of bad that tries to kill anythinggood. If he knew about you, heâd do whatever hecould to take you away from me.â
âHe canât take me away from you,â Park said.Sure he can, she thought. âHe can take me
away from you,â she said. âThe last time he gotreally mad at me, he kicked me out and didnât letme come home for a year.â
âJesus.ââYeah.ââIâm sorry.ââDonât be sorry,â she said. âJust donât tempt
him.ââWe could meet at the playground.ââMy siblings would turn me in.ââWe could meet somewhere else.â
209/593
âWhere?ââHere,â he said. âYou could come here.ââWhat would your parents say?ââItâs nice to meet you, Eleanor, would you
like to stay for dinner?âShe laughed. She wanted to say it wouldnât
work, but maybe it would. Maybe.âAre you sure you want them to meet me?â
she asked.âYes,â he said. âI want everyone to meet you.
Youâre my favorite person of all time.âHe kept making her feel like it was safe to
smile. âI donât want to embarrass you â¦â shesaid.
âYou couldnât.âHeadlights shot across the living room.âDamn,â she said. âI think my dadâs home.â
She got up and looked out the window. Her dadand Donna were getting out of the KarmannGhia. Donnaâs hair was a mess.
âDamn, damn, damn,â she said. âI never saidwhy I like you, and now I have to go.â
210/593
âThatâs okay,â he said.âItâs because youâre kind,â she said. âAnd be-
cause you get all my jokes â¦ââOkay,â he laughed.âAnd youâre smarter than I am.ââI am not.ââAnd you look like a protagonist.â She was
talking as fast as she could think. âYou look likethe person who wins in the end. Youâre so pretty,and so good. You have magic eyes,â shewhispered. âAnd you make me feel like acannibal.â
âYouâre crazy.ââI have to go.â She leaned over so the receiver
was close to the base.âEleanor â wait,â Park said. She could hear
her dad in the kitchen and her heartbeateverywhere.
âEleanor â wait â I love you.ââEleanor?â her dad was standing in the door-
way. He was being quiet, in case she was asleep.
211/593
She hung up the phone and pretended that shewas.
212/593
CHAPTER 20
Eleanor
The next day was a blur.Her dad complained that sheâd eaten all the
yogurt.âI didnât eat it, I gave it to Matt.âHer dad only had seven dollars in his wallet,
so thatâs what he gave her. When he was ready totake her home, she said she had to go the bath-room. She went up to the hall closet, found threebrand new toothbrushes and shoved them into thefront of her pants, along with a bar of Dove soap.Donna might have seen her (she was right therein the bedroom), but she didnât say anything.
Eleanor felt sorry for Donna. Her dad neverlaughed at anyoneâs jokes but his own.
When her dad dropped Eleanor off at her house,all the little kids ran out to see him. He gave themrides around the neighborhood in his new car.
Eleanor wished she had a phone to call thecops. âThereâs a guy driving around the Flatswith a bunch of kids hanging out of a convertible.Iâm pretty sure none of them have seat belts onand that heâs been drinking Scotch all morning.Oh, and while youâre here, thereâs another guy inthe backyard smoking hash. In a school zone.â
When their dad finally left, Mouse couldnâtstop talking about him. After a few hours, Richietold everybody to put their coats on. âWeâre go-ing to a movie,â he said, looking right at Eleanor.âAll of us.â
Eleanor and the little kids climbed into theback of the truck and huddled against the cab,making faces at the baby, who got to sit inside.Richie drove down Parkâs street on the way outof the neighborhood, but Park wasnât outside,thank God. Of course, Tina and her Neanderthal
214/593
boyfriend were out. Eleanor didnât even try toduck. What was the point? Steve whistled at her.
It was snowing on the way home from themovie. (Short Circuit.) Richie drove slow, whichmeant that even more snow fell on them, but atleast nobody flew out of the truck.
Huh, Eleanor thought. Iâm not fantasizingabout being thrown from a moving vehicle.Weird.
When they drove by Parkâs house again in thedark, she wondered which window was his.
Park
He regretted saying it. Not because it wasnât true.He loved her. Of course he did. There was noother way to explain ⦠everything Park felt.
But he hadnât meant to tell her like that. Sosoon. And over the phone. Especially knowinghow she felt about Romeo and Juliet.
Park was waiting for his little brother tochange clothes. Every Sunday, they got dressed
215/593
up, in nice pants and sweaters, and had dinnerwith their grandparents. But Josh was playing Su-per Mario and wouldnât turn it off. (He was aboutto get to the infinity turtle for the first time.)
âIâm going over,â Park yelled to his parents.âIâll see you there.â
He ran across the yard because he didnât feellike putting on a coat.
His grandparentsâ house smelled likechicken-fried chicken. His grandma only hadfour Sunday dinners in her repertoire â chicken-fried chicken, chicken-fried steak, pot roast andcorned beef â but they were all good.
His grandpa was watching TV in the livingroom. Park stopped to give him half a hug, thenwent into the kitchen and hugged his grandma.She was so small, even Park towered over her.All the women in his family were tiny, and all themen were huge. Only Parkâs DNA had missedthe memo. Maybe the Korean genes scrambledeverything.
216/593
That didnât explain Joshâs hugeness, though.Josh looked like the Korean genes had skippedhim altogether. His eyes were brown and justbarely almondy â almond-flavored. And his hairwas dark, but not even close to black. Joshlooked like a big German or Polish kid whoseeyes kind of crinkled when he smiled.
Their grandmother looked nothing but Irish.Or maybe Park only thought that because every-one in his dadâs family made such a big dealabout being Irish. Park got a âKiss Me, Iâm IrishâT-shirt every year for Christmas.
He set his grandparentsâ table without beingasked, because it had always been his job. Whenhis mom got there, he hung out in the kitchenwith her and his grandma, and listened to themgossip about the neighbors.
âI heard from Jamie that Parkâs going steadywith one of those kids who live over with RichieTrout,â his grandma said.
217/593
It shouldnât surprise Park that his dad hadalready told his grandma. His dad could neverkeep a secret.
âEverybody talking about Parkâs girlfriend,âhis mom said, âexcept for Park.â
âI heard sheâs a redhead,â his grandma said.Park pretended to read the newspaper. âYou
shouldnât listen to gossip, Grandma.ââWell, I wouldnât have to,â his grandma said,
âif youâd just introduce us to her.âHe rolled his eyes. Which made him think of
Eleanor. Which almost made him feel like tellingthem about her, just so heâd have a reason to sayher name.
âWell, my heart goes out to any child livingin that house,â his grandma said. âThat Trout boyhas never been any good. He smashed out ourmailbox while your dad was in the service. Iknow it was him because he was the only one inthe neighborhood with an El Camino. He grewup in that little house, you know, until his parentsmoved someplace even more redneck than here.
218/593
Wyoming, I think it was. They probably movedto get away from him.â
âTishhhh,â his mom said. Grandma was alittle sharp for his momâs taste sometimes.
âWe thought heâd moved out west, too,â shesaid, âbut now heâs back with an older wife wholooks like a movie star and a whole house full ofred-headed stepchildren. Gil told your grandpathat theyâve got a big old dog living there, too. Inever â¦â
Park felt like he should defend Eleanor. Buthe wasnât sure how.
âIt doesnât surprise me that you have a thingfor redheads,â his grandma said. âYour grandfath-er was in love with a redhead. Lucky for me, shewouldnât have anything to do with him.â
What would Parkâs grandmother say if he didintroduce her to Eleanor? What would she say tothe neighbors?
And what would his mother say?He watched his mom mash potatoes with a
masher as big as her arm. She was wearing
219/593
stonewashed jeans and a pink V-neck sweater,with fringed leather boots. There was a gold an-gel charm hanging around her neck and goldcrosses hanging from her ears. Sheâd be the mostpopular girl on the bus. He couldnât imagine herliving anywhere but here.
Eleanor
Sheâd never lied to her mother. Not about any-thing important, anyway. But on Sunday night,while Richie was at the bar, Eleanor told hermom that she might go over to a friendâs houseafter school the next day.
âWhoâs that?â her mom asked.âTina,â Eleanor said. It was the first name she
thought of. âShe lives in the neighborhood.âHer mom was distracted. Richie was late, and
his steak was drying out in the oven. If she took itout, heâd be pissed that it was cold. But if she leftit in, heâd be pissed that it was tough.
220/593
âOkay,â she said. âIâm glad youâre finallymaking friends.â
221/593
CHAPTER 21
Eleanor
Would he look different?Now that she knew that he loved her? (Or
that he had loved her, at least for a minute or twoon Friday night. At least enough to say so.)
Would he look different?Would he look away?He did look different. More beautiful than
ever. When she got on the bus, Park was sittingtall in the seat, so she could see him. (Or maybeso that he could see her.) And when he let her in-to the seat, he sat back down again against her.They both slouched down low.
âThat was the longest weekend of my life,â hesaid.
She laughed and leaned into him.
âAre you over me?â he asked. She wished shecould say things like that. That she could ask himquestions like that, even in a joking way.
âYeah,â she said. âOver and over and over.ââYeah?ââYeah, no.âShe reached into his jacket and slipped the
Beatles tape into his T-shirt pocket. He caughther hand and held it to his heart.
âWhatâs this?â He pulled the tape out with hisother hand.
âThe greatest songs ever written. Youârewelcome.â
He rubbed her hand against his chest. Justbarely. Just enough to make her blush.
âThank you,â he said.She waited until they were at her locker to
tell him the other thing. She didnât want anyoneto hear. He was standing next to her and pur-posely bumping his backpack into her shoulder.
âI told my mom that I might go over to afriendâs house after school.â
223/593
âYou did?ââYeah, it doesnât have to be today though. I
donât think sheâll change her mind.ââNo, today. Come over today.ââDonât you have to ask your mom?âHe shook his head. âShe doesnât care. I can
even have girls in my room, if I keep the dooropen.â
âGirl-zzz? Youâve had enough girls in yourroom to require a ruling?â
âOh, yeah,â he said. âYou know me.âI donât, she thought to herself, not really.
Park
For the first time in weeks, Park didnât have thatanxious feeling in his stomach on the way homefrom school, like he had to soak up enough ofEleanor to keep him until the next day.
He had a different anxious feeling. Now thathe was actually introducing Eleanor to his mom,
224/593
he couldnât help but see her the way his momwas going to.
His mom was a beautician who sold Avon.She never left the house without touching up hermascara. When Patti Smith was on SaturdayNight Live, his mom had gotten upset â âWhy shewant to look like man? Itâs so sad.â
Eleanor, today, was wearing her sharkskinsuit jacket and an old plaid cowboy shirt. She hadmore in common with his grandpa than his mom.
And it wasnât just the clothes. It was her.Eleanor wasnât ⦠nice.She was good. She was honorable. She was
honest. She would definitely help an old ladyacross the street. But nobody â not even the oldlady â would ever say, âHave you met that Elean-or Douglas? What a nice girl.â
Parkâs mom liked nice. She loved nice. Sheliked smiling and small talk and eye contact â¦All things Eleanor sucked at.
Also, his mom didnât get sarcasm. And hewas pretty sure it wasnât a language thing. She
225/593
just didnât get it. She called David Letterman âtheugly, mean one on after Johnny.â
Park realized that his hands were sweatingand let go of Eleanorâs. He put his hand on herknee instead, and that felt so good, so new, hestopped thinking about his mom for a fewminutes.
When they got to his stop, he stood in theaisle and waited for her. But she shook her head.âIâll meet you there,â she said.
He felt relieved. And then guilty. As soon asthe bus pulled away, he ran to his house. Hisbrother wouldnât be home yet, that was good.âMom!â
âIn here!â she called from the kitchen. Shewas painting her nails a pearly pink.
âMom,â he said. âHey. Um, Eleanorâs comingover in few minutes. My, um, my Eleanor. Now.Is that okay?â
âRight now?â She shook the bottle. Click,click, click.
226/593
âYeah, donât make a big deal, okay? Just â¦be cool.â
âOkay,â she said. âIâm cool.âHe nodded, then looked around the kitchen
and the living room to make sure there was noth-ing weird sitting out. He checked his room, too.His mom had made his bed.
He opened the door before Eleanor knocked.âHi,â she said. She looked nervous. Well, she
looked angry, but he was pretty sure that was be-cause she was nervous.
âHey,â he said. This morning, all heâd beenable to think about was how to get more servingsof Eleanor into his day, but now that she washere ⦠he wished he had thought this through.âCome on in,â he said. âAnd smile,â he whisperedat the second-to-last second, âokay?â
âWhat?ââSmile.ââWhy?ââNever mind.â
227/593
His mom was standing in the doorway to thekitchen.
âMom, this is Eleanor,â he said.His mom smiled broadly.Eleanor smiled, too, but it was all messed up.
She looked like she was squinting into a brightlight or getting ready to tell someone bad news.
He thought he saw his momâs pupils widen,but he was probably imagining it.
Eleanor went to shake his momâs hand, butshe waved them in the air, like âsorry my nailsare wet,â a gesture that Eleanor didnât seem torecognize.
âItâs nice to meet you, Eleanor.â El-la-no.âItâs nice to meet you,â Eleanor said, still
squinty and weird.âYou live close enough to walk?â his mom
asked.Eleanor nodded.âThatâs nice,â his mom said.Eleanor nodded.âYou kids want some pop? Some snacks?â
228/593
âNo,â Park said, cutting her off. âI mean â¦âEleanor shook her head.âWeâre just going to watch some TV,â he
said, âokay?ââSure,â his mom said. âYou know where to
find me.âShe went back in the kitchen, and Park
walked over to the couch. He wished he lived ina split-level or a house with a finished basement.Whenever he went over to Calâs house in westOmaha, Calâs mom sent them downstairs and leftthem alone.
Park sat on the couch. Eleanor sat at the otherend. She was staring at the floor and chewing onthe skin around her fingernails.
He turned on MTV and took a deep breath.After a few minutes, he scooted toward the
middle of the couch. âHey,â he said. Eleanorstared at the coffee table. There was big bunch ofred glass grapes on the table. His mom lovedgrapes. âHey,â he said again.
He scooted closer.
229/593
âWhy did you tell me to smile?â shewhispered.
âI donât know,â he said. âBecause I wasnervous.â
âWhy are you nervous? This is your house.ââI know, but Iâve never brought anyone like
you home before.âShe looked at the television. There was a
Wang Chung video on.Eleanor stood up suddenly. âIâll see you
tomorrow.ââNo,â he said. He stood up, too. âWhat?
Why?ââJust. Iâll see you tomorrow,â she said.âNo,â he said. He took her arm by the elbow.
âYou just got here. What is it?âShe looked up at him painfully, âAnyone like
me?ââThatâs not what I meant,â he said. âI meant
anyone I care about.âShe took a breath and shook her head. There
were tears on her cheeks. âIt doesnât matter. I
230/593
shouldnât be here, Iâm going to embarrass you.Iâm going home.â
âNo,â he pulled her closer. âCalm down,okay?â
âWhat if your mom sees me crying?ââThat ⦠wouldnât be great, but I donât want
you to leave.â He was afraid that if she left now,sheâd never come back. âCome on, sit next tome.â
Park sat down and pulled Eleanor down nextto him, so he was sitting between her and thekitchen.
âI hate meeting new people,â she whispered.âWhy?ââBecause they never like me.ââI liked you.ââNo, you didnât, I had to wear you down.ââI like you now.â He put his arm around her.âDonât. What if your mom comes in?ââShe wonât care.ââI care,â Eleanor said, pushing him away. âItâs
too much. Youâre making me nervous.â
231/593
âOkay,â he said, giving her space. âJust donâtleave.â
She nodded and looked at the TV.After a while, maybe twenty minutes, she
stood up again.âStay a little longer,â he said. âDonât you want
to meet my dad?ââI super donât want to meet your dad.ââWill you come back tomorrow?ââI donât know.ââI wish I could walk you home.ââYou can walk me to the door.â He did.âWill you tell your mom I said goodbye? I
donât want her to think Iâm rude.ââYeah.âEleanor stepped out onto his porch.âHey,â he said. It came out hard and frus-
trated. âI told you to smile because youâre prettywhen you smile.â
She walked to the bottom of the steps, thenlooked back at him. âItâd be better if you thoughtI was pretty when I donât.â
232/593
âThatâs not what I meant,â he said, but shewas walking away.
When Park went inside, his mother came outto smile at him.
âYour Eleanor seems nice,â she said.He nodded and went to his room. No, he
thought, falling onto his bed. No, she doesnât.
Eleanor
He was probably going to break up with her to-morrow. Whatever. At least she wouldnât have tomeet his dad. God, what must his dad be like? Helooked just like Tom Selleck; Eleanor had seen afamily portrait sitting on their TV cabinet. Parkin grade school, by the way? Extremely cute.Like, Webster cute. The whole family was cute.Even his white brother.
His mom looked exactly like a doll. In TheWizard of Oz â the book, not the movie âDorothy goes to this place called the Dainty Ch-ina Country, and all the people are tiny and
233/593
perfect. When Eleanor was little and her momread her the story, Eleanor had thought theDainty China people were Chinese. But theywere actually ceramic, or theyâd turn ceramic, ifyou tried to sneak one back to Kansas.
Eleanor imagined Parkâs dad, Tom Selleck,tucking his Dainty China person into his flakjacket and sneaking her out of Korea.
Parkâs mom made Eleanor feel like a giant.Eleanor couldnât be that much taller than her,maybe three or four inches. But Eleanor was somuch bigger. If you were an alien who came toEarth to study its life forms, you wouldnât eventhink the two of them were the same species.
When Eleanor was around girls like that âlike Parkâs mom, like Tina, like most of the girlsin the neighborhood â she wondered where theyput their organs. Like, how could you have astomach and intestines and kidneys, and stillwear such tiny jeans? Eleanor knew that she wasfat, but she didnât feel that fat. She could feel herbones and muscles just underneath all the chub,
234/593
and they were big, too. Parkâs mom could wearEleanorâs ribcage like a roomy vest.
Park was probably going to break up with hertomorrow, and not even because she was huge.He was going to break up with her because shewas a huge mess. Because she couldnât even bearound regular people without freaking out.
It was just too much. Meeting his pretty, per-fect mom. Seeing his normal, perfect house.Eleanor hadnât known there were houses like thatin this crappy neighborhood â houses with wall-to-wall carpeting and little baskets of potpourrieverywhere. She didnât know there were familieslike that. The only upside to living in this effed-up neighborhood was that everybody else waseffed up, too. The other kids might hate Eleanorfor being big and weird, but they werenât goingto hate on her for having a broken family and abroke-down house. That was kind of the rulearound here.
Parkâs family didnât fit. They were the Cleav-ers. And heâd told her that his grandparents lived
235/593
in the house next door, which had flower boxes,for Christâs sake. His family was practically theWaltons.
Eleanorâs family had been messed up evenbefore Richie came around and sent everythingstraight to hell.
She would never belong in Parkâs livingroom. She never felt like she belonged anywhere,except for when she was lying on her bed, pre-tending to be somewhere else.
236/593
CHAPTER 22
Eleanor
When Eleanor got to their seat the next morning,Park didnât stand up to let her in. He just scootedover. It didnât seem like he wanted to look at her;he handed her some comic books, then turnedaway.
Steve was being really loud. Maybe he wasalways this loud. When Park was holding herhand, Eleanor couldnât even hear herself think.
Everyone in the back of the bus was singingthe Nebraska fight song. There was some biggame coming up this weekend, against Oklahomaor Oregon or something. Mr Stessman was givingthem extra credit all week for wearing red. Youwouldnât think Mr Stessman would be prone to
all this Husker crap, but it seemed like nobodywas immune.
Except Park.Park was wearing a U2 shirt today with a pic-
ture of a little boy on the chest. Eleanor had beenup all night thinking about how he was probablydone with her, and now she just wanted to putherself out of her misery.
She pulled at the edge of his sleeve.âYeah?â Park said softly.âAre you over me?â she asked. It didnât come
out like a joke. Because it wasnât.He shook his head, but looked out the
window.âAre you mad at me?â she asked.His fingers were locked loosely together in
his lap, like he was thinking about praying. âSortof.â
âIâm sorry,â she said.âYou donât even know why Iâm mad.ââIâm still sorry.âHe looked at her then and smiled a little.
238/593
âDo you want to know?â he asked.âNo.ââWhy not?ââBecause itâs probably for something I canât
help.ââLike what?â he asked.âLike for being weird,â she said. âOr ⦠for
hyperventilating in your living room.ââI feel like that was partly my fault.ââIâm sorry,â she said.âEleanor, stop, listen, Iâm mad because I feel
like you decided to leave my house as soon asyou walked in, maybe even before that.â
âI felt like I shouldnât be there,â she said. Shedidnât say it loud enough to be heard over thecreeps in the back. (Seriously. Their singing waseven worse than their shouting.) âI didnât feel likeyou wanted me there,â she said, a little louder.
The way Park looked at her then, biting hisbottom lip, she knew she was at least a little bitright.
Sheâd wanted to be all wrong.
239/593
Sheâd wanted him to tell her that he did wanther at his house, that he wanted her to come backand try again.
Park said something, but she couldnât hearhim, because now the kids in the back werechanting. Steve was standing at the back of theaisle, waving his gorilla arms like a conductor.
Go. Big. Red.Go. Big. Red.Go. Big. Red.She looked around. Everyone was saying it.Go. Big. Red.Go. Big. Red.Eleanorâs fingertips went cold. She looked
around again, and realized that they were alllooking at her.
Go. Big. Red.Realized that they meant it for her.Go. Big. Red.She looked at Park. He knew it, too. He was
staring straight ahead. His fists were clenched
240/593
tight at his sides. He looked like someone sheâdnever met.
âItâs okay,â she said.He closed his eyes and shook his head.The bus was parking in front of their school,
and Eleanor couldnât wait to get off. She forcedherself to stay in her seat until it stopped, and tocalmly walk forward. The chanting broke up intolaughter. Park was right behind her, but hestopped as soon as he was off the bus. He threwhis backpack on the ground and took off his coat.
Eleanor stopped, too. âHey,â she said, âwait,no. What are you doing?â
âIâm ending this.ââNo. Come on. Itâs not worth it.ââYou are,â he said fiercely, looking at her.
âYouâre worth it.ââThis isnât for me,â she said. She wanted to
pull at him, but she didnât feel like he was hers tohold back. âI donât want this.â
âIâm tired of them embarrassing you.â
241/593
Steve was getting off the bus, and Parkclenched his fists again.
âEmbarrassing me?â she said. âOr embarrass-ing you?â
He looked back at her, stricken. And sheknew again that she was right. Damn it. Why didhe keep letting her be right about all the crappystuff?
âIf this is for me,â she said, as fiercely as shecould, âthen listen to me. I donât want this.â
He looked in her eyes. His eyes were sogreen, they looked yellow. He was breathingheavy, and his face was dark red under the gold.
âIs it for me?â she asked.He nodded. He dug into her with his eyes. He
looked like he was begging for something.âItâs okay,â she said. âPlease. Letâs go to
class.âHe closed his eyes and, eventually, nodded.
She bent over to get his coat, and heard Stevesay, âThatâs right, Red. Show it off.â
And then Park was gone.
242/593
When she turned to look, he was alreadyshoving Steve back toward the bus. They lookedlike David and Goliath, if David had gotten closeenough to let Goliath kick his ass.
Kids were already yelling âfight!â and run-ning from every direction. Eleanor ran, too.
She heard Park say, âIâm so sick of yourmouth.â
And she heard Steve say, âAre you seriouswith this?â
He pushed Park hard, but Park didnât fall.Park took a few steps back, then cranked hisshoulder forward, spinning into the air and kick-ing Steve right in the mouth. The whole crowdgasped.
Tina screamed.Steve sprung forward almost as soon as Park
landed, swinging his giant fists and clubbing Parkin the head.
Eleanor thought that she might be watchinghim die.
243/593
She ran to get between them, but Tina wasalready there. Then one of the bus drivers wasthere. And an assistant principal. All pushingthem apart.
Park was panting and hanging his head.Steve was holding his own mouth. There was
a waterfall of blood on his chin. âJesus Christ,Park, what the fuck? I think you knocked out mytooth.â
Park lifted his head. His whole face wascovered with blood. He staggered forward andthe assistant principal caught him. âLeave ⦠mygirlfriend ⦠alone.â
âI didnât know she was really your girlfriend,âSteve shouted. A bunch more blood spilled out ofhis mouth.
âJesus, Steve. It shouldnât matter.ââIt matters,â Steve spat. âYouâre my friend. I
didnât know she was your girlfriend.âPark put his hands on his knees and shook his
head, splattering the sidewalk.âWell, she is.â
244/593
âAll right,â Steve said. âJesus.âThere were enough adults now to herd the
boys to the building. Eleanor carried Parkâs coatand his backpack to her locker. She didnât knowwhat to do with them.
She didnât know what to do with herselfeither. She didnât know how to feel.
Was she supposed to be happy that Park hadcalled her his girlfriend? Itâs not like heâd givenher any choice in the matter â and itâs not likeheâd said it happily. He said it with his headdown, with his face dripping blood.
Should she be worried about him? Could hestill have brain damage, even though heâd beentalking? Could he still stroke out, or fall into acoma? Whenever anyone in her family was fight-ing, her mother would start shouting, âNot in thehead, not in the head!â
Also, was it wrong to be so worried aboutParkâs face?
Steve had the kind of face that could take orleave teeth. A few gaps in Steveâs smile would
245/593
just add to the big creepy goon look he wasrocking.
But Parkâs face was like art. And not weird,ugly art either. Park had the sort of face youpainted because you didnât want history to forgetit.
Was Eleanor supposed to be mad at him still?Was she supposed to be indignant? Was she sup-posed to shout at him when she saw him in Eng-lish class, âWas that for me? Or for you?â
She hung his trench coat in her locker, andleaned in to take a deep breath. It smelled likeIrish Spring and a little bit like potpourri and likesomething she couldnât describe anyway otherthan boy.
Park wasnât in English or history, and he wasnâton the bus after school. Neither was Steve. Tinawalked by Eleanorâs seat with her head in the air;Eleanor looked away. Everybody else on the buswas talking about the fight. âFucking Kung Fu,fucking David Carradine.â And âFuck David Car-radine â fucking Chuck Norris.â
246/593
Eleanor got off at Parkâs stop.
Park
He was suspended for two days.Steve was suspended for two weeks because
this was his third fight of the year. Park felt kindof bad about that â because Park was the onewhoâd started the fight â but then he thoughtabout all the other ridiculous crap Steve did everyday and never got busted for.
Parkâs mom was so mad, she wouldnât comeget him. She called his dad at work. When hisdad showed up, the principal thought he wasSteveâs dad.
âActually,â his dad said, pointing at Park,âthat oneâs mine.â
The school nurse said Park didnât have to gothe hospital, but he looked pretty bad. He had ablack eye and probably a broken nose.
247/593
Steve did have to go the hospital. His toothwas loose, and the nurse was pretty sure heâdbroken a finger.
Park waited in the office with ice on his facewhile his dad talked to the principal. The secret-ary brought him a Sprite from the teachersâlounge.
His dad didnât say anything until they weredriving.
âTaekwando is the art of self-defense,â hesaid sternly.
Park didnât answer. His whole face wasthrobbing; the nurse wasnât allowed to give outTylenol.
âDid you really kick him in the face?â his dadasked.
Park nodded.âThat had to be a jump kick.ââJump reverse hook,â Park groaned.âNo way.â
248/593
Park tried to give his dad a dirty look, but anylook at all felt like getting hit in the face withrocks.
âHeâs lucky you wear those little tennisshoes,â his dad said, âeven in the middle of winter⦠Seriously, a jump reverse hook?â
Park nodded.âHuh. Well, your mom is going to hit the
goddamn roof when she sees you. She was atyour grandmaâs house, crying, when she calledme.â
His dad was right. When Park walked in, hismom was practically incoherent.
She took him by the shoulders and looked upat his face, shaking her head. âFighting!â she said,stabbing her index finger into his chest. âFightinglike white-trash dumb monkey â¦â
Heâd seen her this mad at Josh before â heâdseen her throw a basket of silk flowers at Joshâshead â but never at him.
âWaste,â she said. âWaste! Fighting! Canâttrust you with own face.â
249/593
His dad tried to put his hand on her shoulder,but she shook him off.
âGet the boy a steak, Harold,â his grandmasaid, sitting Park at the kitchen table and inspect-ing his face.
âIâm not wasting a steak on that,â his grandpasaid.
His dad went to the cupboard to get Parksome Tylenol and a glass of water.
âCan you breathe?â his grandma asked.âThrough my mouth,â Park said.âYour dad broke his nose so many times, he
can only breathe through one nostril. Thatâs whyhe snores like a freight train.â
âNo more taekwando,â his mom said. âNomore fighting.â
âMindy â¦â his dad said. âIt was one fight. Hewas sticking up for some girl the kids pick on.â
âSheâs not some girl,â Park growled. Hisvoice made every bone in his head vibrate withpain. âSheâs my girlfriend.â
He hoped so, anyway.
250/593
âIs it the redhead?â his grandma asked.âEleanor,â he said. âHer name â is Eleanor.ââNo girlfriend, no,â his mom said, folding her
arms. âGrounded.â
Eleanor
When Eleanor rang the doorbell, Magnum P.I.answered.
âHi,â she said, trying to smile. âI go to schoolwith Park. I have his books and stuff.â
Parkâs dad looked her up and down, but notlike he was checking her out, thank God. Morelike he was sizing her up. (Which was also un-comfortable.) âAre you Helen?â he asked.
âEleanor,â she said.âEleanor, right ⦠Just a second.âBefore she could tell him that she just wanted
to drop off Parkâs stuff, he walked away. He leftthe door open, and Eleanor could hear him talk-ing to someone, probably in the kitchen, probablyParkâs mom. âCome on, Mindy â¦â And, âJust for
251/593
a few minutes â¦â And then, right before he cameback to the door, âWith a nickname like Big Red,I expected her to be a lot bigger.â
âI was just dropping this off,â Eleanor saidwhen he pushed the screen open.
âThanks,â he said, âcome on in.âEleanor held up Parkâs backpack.âSeriously, kid,â he said. âCome on in and
give it to him yourself. Iâm sure he wants to seeyou.â
Donât be, she thought.But she followed him through the living
room, down the short hall to Parkâs room. Hisdad knocked softly and peeked in the door.
âHey. Sugar Ray. Someoneâs here to see you.You want to powder your nose first?â
He opened the door for Eleanor, then walkedaway.
Parkâs room was small, but it was packedwith stuff. Stacks of books and tapes and comicbooks. Model airplanes. Model cars. Board
252/593
games. A rotating solar system hung over his bedlike one of those things you put over a crib.
Park was on his bed, trying to prop himselfup on his elbows, when she walked in.
She gasped when she saw his face. It lookedso much worse than it had earlier.
One of his eyes was swollen shut, and hisnose was thick and purple. It made her want tocry. And to kiss him. (Because apparentlyeverything made her want to kiss him. Park couldtell her that he had lice and leprosy and parasiticworms living in his mouth, and she would stillput on fresh ChapStik. God.)
âAre you okay?â she asked. Park nodded andsat up against his headboard. She set down hisbag and his coat, and walked over to the bed. Hemade room for her, so she sat down.
âWhoa,â she said, falling backwards, tippingPark on his side. He groaned and grabbed herarm.
âSorry,â she said, âoh my God, sorry, are youokay? I wasnât expecting a waterbed.â Just saying
253/593
that word made her giggle. Park laughed a little,too. It sounded like snorting.
âMy mom bought it,â he said. âShe thinkstheyâre good for your back.â
He was keeping both of his eyes mostly shut,even the good one, and he didnât open his mouthwhen he talked.
âDoes it hurt to talk?â she asked.He nodded. He hadnât let go of her arm, even
though sheâd recovered her balance. If anything,he was holding it tighter.
She reached up with her other hand andlightly touched his hair. Brushed it out of hisface. It felt smooth and sharp at the same time,like she could feel each strand under herfingertips.
âIâm sorry,â he said.She didnât ask why.There were tears pooling in the slit of his left
eye and slipping down his right cheek. She star-ted to wipe them away, but she didnât want totouch him.
254/593
âItâs okay â¦â she said. She let her hand settlein her own lap.
She wondered if he was still trying to breakup with her. If he was, she wouldnât hold itagainst him.
âDid I ruin everything?â he asked.âEvery-what?â she whispered, as if listening
might hurt him, too.âEvery-us.âShe shook her head, even though he probably
couldnât see her. âNot. Possible,â she said.He ran his palm down her arm and squeezed
her hand. She could see the muscles flex in hisforearm and just under the sleeve of his T-shirt.
âI think you might have ruined your face,â shesaid.
He groaned.âWhich is okay,â she said, âbecause you were
way too cute for me, anyway.ââYou think Iâm cute?â he said thickly, pulling
on her hand.
255/593
She was glad he couldnât see her face. âIthink youâre â¦â
Beautiful. Breathtaking. Like the person in aGreek myth who makes one of the gods stopcaring about being a god.
Somehow the bruises and swelling made Parkeven more beautiful. His face looked ready tobreak out of its chrysalis.
âTheyâre still going to make fun of me,â sheblurted. âThis fight doesnât change that. Youcanât start kicking people every time someonethinks Iâm weird or ugly ⦠Promise me youwonât try. Promise me that youâll try not to care.â
He pulled on her hand again, and shook hishead, gingerly.
âBecause it doesnât matter to me, Park. If youlike me,â she said, âI swear to God, nothing elsematters.â
He leaned back into his headboard, andpulled her hand to his chest.
256/593
âEleanor, how many times do I have to tellyou,â he said, through his teeth, âthat I donât likeyou â¦â
Park was grounded, and he wouldnât be back atschool until Friday.
But nobody bothered Eleanor the next day onthe bus. Nothing bothered her all day long.
After gym class, she found more pervy stuffwritten on her chemistry book â âpop thatcherry,â written in globby purple ink. Instead ofscribbling it out, Eleanor tore off the cover andthrew it away. She might be broke and pathetic,but she could still scrounge up another brown pa-per bag.
When Eleanor got home after school, hermom followed her into the kidsâ room. Therewere two new pairs of Goodwill jeans folded onthe top bunk.
âI found some money when I was doing laun-dry,â her mom said. Which meant that Richie hadaccidentally left money in his pants. If he came
257/593
home drunk, heâd never ask about it â heâd justassume he spent it at the bar.
Whenever her mom found money, she tried tospend it on things Richie would never notice.Clothes for Eleanor. New underwear for Ben.Cans of tuna fish and bags of flour. Things thatcould be hidden in drawers and cupboards.
Her mom had become some sort of geniusdouble agent since she hooked up with Richie. Itwas like she was keeping them all alive behindhis back.
Eleanor tried the jeans on before anybodyelse got home. They were a little big, but muchnicer than anything else she had. All her otherpants had something wrong with them â a brokenzipper or a tear in the crotch â some flaw she hadto hide by constantly pulling down her shirt. Itwould be nice to have jeans that didnât do any-thing worse than sag.
Maisieâs present was a bag of half-dressedBarbies. When Maisie got home, she laid all the
258/593
dolls out on the bottom bunk, trying to put to-gether one or two complete outfits for them.
Eleanor climbed onto the bed with her andhelped comb and braid their frayed hair.
âI wish thereâd been a Ken in there,â Maisiesaid.
On Friday morning, when Eleanor got to her busstop, Park was already there waiting for her.
259/593
CHAPTER 23
Park
His eye went from purple to blue to green toyellow.
âHow long am I grounded?â he asked hismother.
âLong enough to make you sorry about fight,âshe said.
âI am sorry,â he said.But he wasnât really. The fight had changed
something on the bus. Park felt less anxious nowâ more relaxed. Maybe it was because heâd stoodup to Steve. Maybe it was because he had noth-ing left to hide â¦
Plus nobody on the bus had ever seen any-body kick like that in real life.
âIt was pretty fantastic,â Eleanor said on theway to school, a few days after he came back.âWhere did you learn to do that?â
âMy dadâs been making me go to taekwandosince kindergarten ⦠It was actually kind of astupid, show-offy kick. If Steve had been think-ing, he could have grabbed my leg or pushedme.â
âIf Steve had been thinking â¦â she said.âI thought youâd think it was lame,â he said.âI did.ââLame and fantastic?ââThose are both your middle names â¦ââI want to try again.ââTry what again? Your Karate Kid thing? I
think that would be less fantastic. Youâve got toknow when to walk away â¦â
âNo, I want you to come over again. Wouldyou?â
âIt doesnât matter,â she said. âYouâregrounded.â
âYeah â¦â
261/593
Eleanor
Everybody at school knew that Eleanor was thereason Park Sheridan kicked Steve Dixon in themouth.
There was a new kind of whispering whenshe walked down the halls.
Somebody in geography asked her if it wastrue that they were fighting over her. âNo!âEleanor said. âFor Christâs sake.â
Later she wished that she would have saidâYes!â â because if that had gotten back to Tina,oh my God, it would have made her furious.
On the day of the fight, DeNice and Beebiwanted Eleanor to tell them every gory detail.Especially the gory details. DeNice even boughtEleanor an ice cream cone to celebrate.
âAnyone who whups Steve Dixonâs sorry assdeserves a medal,â DeNice said.
âI didnât go near Steveâs ass,â Eleanor said.âBut you were the cause of the ass-whup-
ping,â DeNice said. âI heard your boy kicked himso hard, Steve cried blood.â
262/593
âThatâs not true,â Eleanor said.âGirl, you need to learn a lesson about stand-
ing in your own light,â DeNice said. âIf myJonesy kicked Steveâs ass, Iâd be walking aroundthis place singing that song from Rocky. Nuh-nuh, nuhhh, nuh-nuh, nuhhh â¦â
That made Beebi giggle. Everything DeNicesaid made Beebi giggle. Theyâd been best friendssince grade school, and the better she got to knowthem, the more Eleanor felt like it was an honorthat theyâd let her into their club.
Granted, it was a weird club.DeNice was wearing her overalls today with
a pink T-shirt, pink and yellow hair ribbons and apink bandana tied around her leg. When theywere standing in line for ice cream, some boywalked by and told DeNice that she looked like ablack Punky Brewster.
DeNice didnât even flinch. âI donât need toworry about that riffraff,â she said to Eleanor. âIgot a man.â
263/593
Jonesy and DeNice were engaged. Heâdalready graduated and was working as an assist-ant manager at ShopKo. They were getting mar-ried as soon as DeNice was legal.
âAnd your manâs fine,â Beebi said, giggling.When Beebi giggled, Eleanor giggled, too.
Beebiâs laugh was that contagious. And she al-ways had a manic, surprised look in her eyes âthat look people get when they canât keep astraight face.
âEleanor wouldnât think heâs fine,â DeNiceteased. âSheâs only interested in stone-coldkillers.â
Park
âHow long am I grounded?â Park asked hisfather.
âThatâs not up to me, thatâs up to yourmother.â
His dad was sitting on the couch, reading Sol-dier of Fortune.
264/593
âShe says forever,â Park said.âI guess itâs forever then.âIt was almost Christmas break. If Park was
grounded during Christmas break, heâd have togo three weeks without seeing Eleanor.
âDad â¦ââIâve got an idea,â his dad said, setting down
the magazine. âYou can be ungrounded as soonas you learn to drive a stick. Then you can driveyour girlfriend around â¦â
âWhat girlfriend?â his mother said. She camein the front door, carrying groceries. Park got upto help her. His dad got up to give her awelcome-home tongue kiss.
âI told Park Iâd unground him if he learnedhow to drive.â
âI know how to drive,â Park shouted from thekitchen.
âLearning how to drive an automatic is likelearning how to do a girl pushup,â his dad said.
âNo girl,â his mother said. âGrounded.â
265/593
âBut for how long?â Park asked, walking backinto the living room. His parents were sitting onthe couch. âYou canât ground me forever.â
âSure we can,â his dad said.âWhy?â Park asked.His mother looked agitated. âYouâre groun-
ded until you stop thinking about that troublegirl.â
Park and his dad both broke character to lookat her.
âWhat trouble girl?â Park asked.âBig Red?â his dad asked.âI donât like her,â his mother said, adamantly.
âShe comes to my house and cries, very weirdgirl, and then next thing I know, youâre kickingfriends and school is calling, face broken ⦠Andeverybody, everybody, tell me that family istrouble. Just trouble. I donât want it.â
Park took a breath and held it. Everything in-side of him felt too hot to let out.
âMindy â¦â his dad said, holding a wait-a-minute hand up to Park.
266/593
âNo,â she said, âno. No weird white girl in myhouse.â
âI donât know if youâve noticed, but weirdwhite girls are my only option,â Park said asloudly as he could. Even this angry, he couldnâtyell at his mother.
âThere are other girls,â his mother said.âGood girls.â
âShe is a good girl,â Park said. âYou donâteven know her.â
His dad was standing, pushing Park towardthe door. âGo,â he said sternly. âGo play basket-ball or something.â
âGood girls donât dress like boys,â his mothersaid.
âGo,â his dad said.Park didnât feel like playing basketball, and it
was too cold outside without his coat. He stood infront of his house for a few minutes, thenstomped over to his grandparentsâ house. Heknocked, then opened the door; they never lockedit.
267/593
They were both in the kitchen, watchingFamily Feud. His grandmother was making Pol-ish sausage.
âPark!â she said. âI must have known youwere coming. I made way too many Tater Tots.â
âI thought you were grounded,â his grandpasaid.
âHush, Harold, you canât be grounded fromyour own grandparents ⦠Are you feeling okay,honey? You look flushed.â
âIâm just cold,â Park said.âAre you staying for dinner?ââYeah,â he said.After dinner, they watched Matlock. His
grandmother crocheted. She was working on ablanket for somebodyâs baby shower. Park staredat the TV, but didnât take anything in.
His grandmother had filled the wall behindthe TV with framed eight-by-ten photographs.There were pictures of his dad and his dadâsolder brother who died in Vietnam, and picturesof Park and Josh from every school year. There
268/593
was a smaller photo of his parents, on their wed-ding day. His dad was in his dress uniform, andhis mom was wearing a pink miniskirt. Some-body had written âSeoul, 1970â in the corner. Hisdad was twenty-three. His mom was eighteen,only two years older than Park.
Everybody had thought she must be pregnant,his dad had told him. But she wasnât. âPracticallypregnant,â his dad said, âbut thatâs a differentthing ⦠We were just in love.â
Park hadnât expected his mom to like Elean-or, not right away â but he hadnât expected her toreject her, either. His mom was so nice to every-body. âYour motherâs an angel,â his grandma al-ways said. Itâs what everyone always said.
His grandparents sent him home after HillStreet Blues.
His mom had gone to bed, but his dad wassitting on the couch, waiting for him. Park triedto walk past.
âSit down,â his dad said.Park sat down.
269/593
âYouâre not grounded anymore.ââWhy not?ââIt doesnât matter why not. Youâre not groun-
ded, and your mother is sorry, you know, foreverything she said.â
âYouâre just saying that,â Park said.His dad sighed. âWell, maybe I am. But that
doesnât matter either. Your mother wants whatâsbest for you, right? Hasnât she always wantedwhatâs best for you?â
âI guess â¦ââSo sheâs just worried about you. She thinks
she can help you pick out a girlfriend the sameway she helps you pick out your classes and yourclothes â¦â
âShe doesnât pick out my clothes.ââJesus, Park, could you just shut up and
listen?âPark sat quietly in the blue easy chair.âThis is new to us, you know? Your motherâs
sorry. Sheâs sorry that she hurt your feelings, and
270/593
she wants you to invite your girlfriend over todinner.â
âSo that she can make her feel bad andweird?â
âWell, she is kind of weird, isnât she?âPark didnât have the energy to be angry. He
sighed and let his head fall back on the chair. Hisdad kept talking.
âIsnât that why you like her?â
Park knew he should still be mad.He knew there were big chunks of this situ-
ation that were completely uncool and out oforder.
But he wasnât grounded anymore, he was go-ing to get to spend more time with Eleanor â¦Maybe theyâd even find a way to be alone. Parkcouldnât wait to tell her. He couldnât wait formorning.
271/593
CHAPTER 24
Eleanor
It was a terrible thing to admit. But sometimesEleanor slept right through the yelling.
Especially after sheâd been back a couplemonths. If she were to wake up every time Richiegot angry ⦠If she got scared every time sheheard him yelling in the back room â¦
Sometimes Maisie would wake her up, crawl-ing into the top bunk. Maisie wouldnât let Elean-or see her cry during the day, but she shook like alittle baby and sucked her thumb at night. All fiveof them had learned to cry without making anynoise. âItâs okay,â Eleanor would say, huggingher. âItâs okay.â
Tonight, when Eleanor woke up, she knewsomething was different.
She heard the back door slam open. And sherealized that, before sheâd been quite awake,sheâd heard menâs voices outside. Men cursing.
There was more slamming in the kitchen âand then gunshots. Eleanor knew they were gun-shots, even though sheâd never heard any before.
Gang members, she thought. Drug dealers.Rapists. Gang members who were also drug-dealing rapists. She could imagine a thousandheinous people who might have some bone topick out of Richieâs skull â even his friends werescary.
She must have started to get out of bed assoon as she heard the gunshots. She was alreadyon the bottom bunk, crawling over Maisie.âDonât move,â she whispered, not sure whetherMaisie was awake.
Eleanor opened the window just enough to fitthrough. There wasnât any screen. She climbedout and ran as lightly as she could off the porch.She stopped at the house next door â an old guynamed Gil lived there. He wore suspenders with
273/593
T-shirts and gave them dirty looks when he wassweeping his sidewalk.
Gil took forever to answer the door, andwhen he did, Eleanor realized sheâd used up allher adrenaline knocking.
âHi,â she said weakly.He looked mean and mad as spit. Gil could
dirty-look Tina right under the table, and thenheâd probably kick her.
âCan I use your phone?â she asked. âI need tocall the police.â
âWhat?â Gil barked. His hair was oiled down,and he even wore suspenders with his pajamas.
âI need to call 911,â she said. She soundedlike she was trying to borrow a cup of sugar. âOrmaybe you could call 911 for me? There are menin my house with ⦠guns. Please.â
Gil didnât seem impressed, but he let her in.His house was really nice inside. She wondered ifhe used to have a wife â or if he just really likedruffles. The phone was in the kitchen. âI think
274/593
there are men in my house,â Eleanor told the 911operator. âI heard gunshots.â
Gil didnât tell her to leave, so she waited forthe police in his kitchen. He had a whole pan ofbrownies on the counter, but he didnât offer herany. His refrigerator was covered with magnetsshaped like states, and he had an egg timer thatlooked like a chicken. He sat at the kitchen tableand lit a cigarette. He didnât offer her one ofthose either.
When the police pulled up, Eleanor walkedout of the house, feeling silly suddenly about herbare feet. Gil shut the door behind her.
The cops didnât get out of their car. âYoucalled 911?â one of them asked.
âI think thereâs somebody in my house,â shesaid shakily. âI heard people yelling andgunshots.â
âAll right,â he said. âHang on a minute, andweâll go in with you.â
275/593
With me, Eleanor thought. She wasnât goingback in there at all. What was she going to say tothe Hells Angels in her living room?
The police officers â two big guys in tallblack boots â parked and followed her up ontothe porch.
âGo ahead,â one said, âopen the door.ââI canât. Itâs locked.ââHowâd you get out?ââThe window.ââThen go back through the window.âThe next time Eleanor called 911, she was
going to request cops who wouldnât send heralone into an occupied building. Did firemen dothis, too? Hey, kid, you go in first and unlock thedoor.
She climbed in the window, climbed overMaisie (still sleeping), ran into the living room,opened the front door, then ran back to her roomand sat on the bottom bunk.
âThis is the police,â she heard.
276/593
Then she heard Richie cussing, âWhat thefuck?â
Her mom: âWhatâs going on?ââThis is the police.âHer brothers and sisters were waking up and
crawling to each other frantically. Someonestepped on the baby and he started to cry.
Eleanor heard the police tramping through thehouse. She heard Richie shouting. The bedroomdoor flew open, and their mom came in like MrRochesterâs wife, in a long, torn, whitenightgown.
âDid you call them?â she asked Eleanor.Eleanor nodded. âI heard gunshots,â she said.âShhhh,â her mother said, rushing to the bed
and pressing her hand too hard over Eleanorâsmouth. âDonât say anything more,â she hissed. âIfthey ask, say it was a mistake. This was all amistake.â
The door opened, and her mother moved herhand away. Two flashlights shot around the
277/593
room. Her siblings were all awake and crying.Their eyes flashed like catsâ.
âTheyâre just scared,â her mother said. âTheydonât know whatâs happening.â
âThereâs nobody here,â the cop said to Elean-or, shining his light in her direction. âWe checkedthe yard and the basement.â
It was more of an accusation than anassurance.
âIâm sorry,â she said. âI thought I heardsomething â¦â
The lights went out, and Eleanor heard allthree men talking in the living room. She heardthe police officers on the porch, with their heavyboots, and she heard them drive away. The win-dow was still open.
Richie came into the room then â he nevercame into their room. Eleanor felt a new flood ofadrenaline.
âWhat were you thinking?â he asked softly.She didnât say anything. Her mother held her
hand, and Eleanor locked her jaw shut.
278/593
âRichie, she didnât know,â her mom said.âShe just heard the gun.â
âWhat the fuck,â he said, slamming his fist in-to the door. The veneer splintered.
âShe thought she was protecting us, it was amistake.â
âAre you trying to get rid of me?â he shouted.âDid you think you could get rid of me?â
Eleanor hid her face in her motherâs shoulder.It wasnât a protection. It was like hiding behindthe thing in the room he was most likely to hit.
âIt was a mistake,â her mother said gently.âShe was trying to help.â
âYou never call them here,â he said to Elean-or, his voice dying, his eyes wild. âNever again.â
And then, shouting, âI can get rid of all ofyou.â He slammed the door behind him.
âBack to bed,â her mother said. âEverybodyâ¦â
âBut, Mom â¦â Eleanor whispered.âIn bed,â her mom said, helping Eleanor up
the ladder to her bunk. Then her mom leaned in
279/593
close, her mouth touching Eleanorâs ear. âIt wasRichie,â she whispered. âThere were kids playingbasketball in the park, being loud ⦠He was justtrying to scare them. But he doesnât have a li-cense, and there are other things in the house â hecould have been arrested. No more tonight. Not abreath.â
She knelt down with the boys for a minute,petting and hushing, then floated out of the room.
Eleanor could swear she heard five hearts ra-cing. Every one of them was stifling a sob. Cry-ing inside out. She climbed out of her bed and in-to Maisieâs.
âItâs okay,â she whispered to the room. âItâsokay now.â
280/593
CHAPTER 25
Park
Eleanor seemed off that morning. She didnât sayanything while they waited for the bus. Whenthey got on, she dropped onto their seat andleaned against the wall.
Park pulled on her sleeve, and she not-even-half smiled.
âOkay?â he asked.She glanced up at him. âNow,â she said.He didnât believe her. He pulled on her sleeve
again.She fell against him and hid her face in his
shoulder.Park laid his face in her hair and closed his
eyes.âOkay?â he asked.
âAlmost,â she said.She pulled away when the bus stopped. She
never let him hold her hand once they were offthe bus. She wouldnât touch him in the hallways.âPeople will look at us,â she always said.
He couldnât believe that still mattered to her.Girls who donât want to be looked at donât tiecurtain tassels in their hair. They donât wearmenâs golf shoes with the spikes still attached.
So today he stood by her locker and onlythought about touching her. He wanted to tell herhis news â but she seemed so far away, he wasnâtsure sheâd hear him.
Eleanor
Where would she go this time?Back to the Hickmansâ?âHey, remember that time when my mom
asked if I could stay with you guys for a fewdays, and then she didnât come back for a year? Ireally appreciate the fact that you didnât turn me
282/593
into Child Protective Services. That was veryChristian of you. Do you still have that foldoutcouch?â
Fuck.Before Richie moved in, Eleanor only knew
that word from books and bathroom walls. Fuck-ing woman. Fucking kids. Fuck you, you littlebitch â who the fuck touched my stereo?
Eleanor hadnât seen it coming the last time.When Richie kicked her out.
She couldnât have seen it coming because shenever thought it could happen. She never thoughtheâd try â and she never, ever thought her momwould go along with it. (Richie must have recog-nized before Eleanor did that her motherâs allegi-ances had shifted.)
It was embarrassing to think about the daythat it happened â embarrassing, on top ofeverything else â because it really was Eleanorâsfault. She really was asking for it.
She was in her room, typing song lyrics on anold manual typewriter that her mom had brought
283/593
home from the Goodwill. It needed new ribbon(Eleanor had a box full of cartridges that didnâtfit), but it still worked. She loved everythingabout that typewriter, the way the keys felt, thesticky, crunchy noise they made. She even likedthe way it smelled, like metal and shoe polish.
She was bored that day, the day it happened.It was too hot to do anything but lie around or
read or watch TV. Richie was in the living room.He hadnât gotten out of bed until 2:00 or 3:00,and everybody could tell he was in a bad mood.Her mom was walking around the house innervous circles, offering Richie lemonade andsandwiches and aspirin. Eleanor hated it whenher mom acted like that. Relentlessly submissive.It was humiliating to be in the same room.
So Eleanor was upstairs typing song lyrics.âScarborough Fair.â
She heard Richie complaining.âWhat the fuck is that noise?â And, âFuck,
Sabrina, canât you shut her up?â
284/593
Her mom tiptoed up the stairs and ducked herhead into Eleanorâs room. âRichie isnât feelingwell,â she said. âCan you put that away?â Shelooked pale and nervous. Eleanor hated that look.
She waited for her mother to get back down-stairs. Then, without really thinking about why,Eleanor deliberately pressed a key.
ACrunch-lap.Her fingertips trembled over the keyboard.RECrch-crch-lap-tap.Nothing happened. No one stirred. The house
was hot and stiff and as quiet as a library in hell.Eleanor closed her eyes and jerked her chin intothe air.
YOU GOING TO SCRABOROUGH FAIRPARSLEY SAAGE ROSEMAYRY ANDTHYME
Richie came up the stairs so fast, in Eleanorâshead he was flying. In Eleanorâs head, he burstopen the door by hurling a ball of fire at it.
285/593
He was on her before she could brace herself,tearing the typewriter from her hands and throw-ing it into the wall so hard it broke through theplaster and hung for a moment in the lath.
Eleanor was too shocked to make out what hewas shouting at her. FAT and FUCK and BITCH.
Heâd never come this close to her before. Herfear of him crushed her back. She didnât wanthim to see it in her eyes, so she pressed her faceinto her hands in her pillow.
FAT and FUCK and BITCH. And IWARNED YOU, SABRINA.
âI hate you,â Eleanor whispered into the pil-low. She could hear things slamming. She couldhear her mother in the doorway, talking softly,like she was trying to put a baby back to sleep.
FAT and FUCK and BITCH and BEGGINGFOR IT, JUST FUCKING BEGGING FOR IT.
âI hate you,â Eleanor said louder. âI hate you,I hate you, I hate you.â
FUCK THIS.âI hate you.â
286/593
FUCK ALL OF YOU.âFuck you.âSTUPID BITCHES.âFuck you, fuck you, fuck you.âWHAT DID SHE JUST SAY?In Eleanorâs head, the house shook.Her mother was pulling on her then, trying to
pull her out of bed. Eleanor tried to come withher, but she was too scared to stand up. Shewanted to flatten herself to the floor and crawlaway. She wanted to pretend that the room wasfull of smoke.
Richie was roaring. Her mother pulled Elean-or to the top of the stairs, then pushed her down.He was right behind them.
Eleanor fell against the banister and practic-ally ran to the front door on all fours. She gotoutside and kept running to the end of the side-walk. Ben was sitting on the porch, playing withhis Hot Wheels. He stopped and watched Eleanorrun by.
287/593
Eleanor wondered if she should keep running,but where would she go? Even when she was alittle girl, she never fantasized about runningaway. She could never imagine herself past theedge of the yard. Where would she go? Whowould take her?
When the front door opened again, Eleanortook a few steps into the street.
It was just her mom. She took Eleanorâs armand started walking quickly toward the neigh-borâs house.
If Eleanor would have known then what wasabout to happen, she would have run back to tellBen goodbye. She would have looked for Maisieand Mouse and kissed them each hard on thecheek. Maybe she would have asked to go backinside to see the baby.
And if Richie had been inside waiting for her,maybe she would have dropped to her knees andbegged him to let her stay. Maybe she wouldhave said anything he wanted her to.
288/593
If he wanted that now â if he wanted her to begfor forgiveness, for mercy, if that was the priceshe had to pay to stay â sheâd do it.
She hoped he couldnât see that.She hoped none of them could see what was
left of her.
Park
She ignored Mr Stessman in English class.In history, she stared out the window.On the way home, she wasnât irritable; she
wasnât anything at all.âOkay?â he asked.She nodded her head against him.When she got off the bus at her stop, Park
still hadnât told her. So he jumped up and fol-lowed her, even though he knew she wouldnâtwant him to.
âPark â¦â she said, looking nervously downthe street to her house.
289/593
âI know,â he said, âbut I wanted to tell you â¦Iâm not grounded anymore.â
âYouâre not?ââUh-uh.â He shook his head.âThatâs great,â she said.âYeah â¦âShe looked back at her house.âIt means you can come over again,â he said.âOh,â she said.âI mean, if you want to.â This wasnât going
like he thought it would. Even when Eleanor waslooking at him, she wasnât looking at him.
âOh,â she said.âEleanor? Is everything okay?âShe nodded.âDo you still â¦â He hung onto the backpack
straps across his chest. âI mean, do you still wantto? Do you still miss me?â
She nodded. She looked like she was going tocry. Park hoped she wouldnât cry at his houseagain ⦠If she ever came back. It felt like shewas slipping away.
290/593
âIâm just really tired,â she said.291/593
CHAPTER 26
Eleanor
Did she miss him?She wanted to lose herself in him. To tie his
arms around her like a tourniquet.If she showed him how much she needed
him, heâd run away.
CHAPTER 27
Eleanor
Eleanor felt better the next morning. Morningsusually got the best of her.
This morning, she woke up with that stupidcat curled up against her like it couldnât tell thatsheâd never liked him or cats in general.
And then her mom gave her a fried egg sand-wich that Richie hadnât wanted, and pinned anold, chipped glass flower to Eleanorâs jacket.
âI found it at the thrift shop,â her mom said.âMaisie wanted it, but I saved it for you.â Shesmudged vanilla behind Eleanorâs ears.
âI might go to Tinaâs house after school,âEleanor said.
âOkay, have fun.â
Eleanor hoped that Park would be waiting forher at the bus stop, but she wouldnât blame him ifhe wasnât.
He was. He was standing there in the half-light, wearing a gray trench coat and black high-tops, and watching for her.
She ran past the last few houses to get to him.âGood morning,â she said, shoving him with
both hands.He laughed and stepped back. âWho are you?ââIâm your girlfriend,â she said. âAsk
anybody.ââNo ⦠my girlfriend is sad and quiet and
keeps me up all night worrying about her.ââBummer. Sounds like you need a different
girlfriend.âHe smiled and shook his head.It was cold and half dark, and Eleanor could
see Parkâs breath. She resisted the urge to try toswallow it.
âI told my mom that I was going to a friendâshouse after school â¦â she said.
294/593
âYeah?âPark was the only person she knew who wore
his backpack actually on his shoulders, not slungover one side â and he was always holding ontothe straps, like heâd just jumped out of a plane orsomething. It was extremely cute. Especiallywhen he was being shy and letting his head hangforward.
She pulled the front of his bangs. âYeah.ââCool,â he said, smiling, all shiny cheeks and
full lips.Donât bite his face, Eleanor told herself. Itâs
disturbing and needy and never happens in situ-ation comedies or movies that end with bigkisses.
âIâm sorry about yesterday,â she said.He hung onto his straps and shrugged.âYesterday happens.âGod, it was like he wanted her to eat his face
clean off.
Park
295/593
He almost told her all the things his mom hadsaid about her.
It seemed like it was wrong to keep secretsfrom Eleanor.
But it seemed like it would be more wrong toshare that kind of secret. It would just makeEleanor even more nervous. She might even re-fuse to come over â¦
And she was so happy today. She was a dif-ferent person. She kept squeezing his hand. Sheeven bit his shoulder when they were getting offthe bus.
Plus, if he told her, at the very least she wasgoing to want to go home and change. She waswearing an orange argyle sweater today, way toobig, with her silky green tie and baggy painterâsjeans.
Park didnât know if Eleanor even had anygirlâs clothes â and he didnât care. He kind ofliked that she didnât. Maybe that was another gaything about him, but he didnât think so, becauseEleanor wouldnât look like a guy even if you cut
296/593
off her hair and gave her a mustache. All themenâs clothes she wore just called attention tohow much of a girl she was.
He wasnât going to tell her about his mom.And he wasnât going to tell her to smile. But ifshe bit him again, he was going to losesomething.
âWho are you?â he asked, when she was stillsmiling in English class.
âAsk anybody,â she said.
Eleanor
In Spanish class today, they were supposed towrite a letter in Spanish to a friend. SeñoraBouzon put on an episode of Qué Pasa, USA?while they worked on it.
Eleanor tried to write a letter to Park. Shedidnât get very far.
Estimado Señor Sheridan,Mi gusta comer su cara.Besos,
297/593
Leonor
For the rest of the day, whenever Eleanor feltnervous or scared, she told herself to be happy in-stead. (It didnât really make her feel better, but itkept her from feeling worse â¦)
She told herself that Parkâs family must bedecent people because theyâd raised a person likePark. Never mind that this principle didnât holdtrue in her own family. It wasnât like she had toface his family alone. Park would be there. Thatwas the whole point. Was there any place so hor-rible that she wouldnât go there to be with Park?
She saw him after seventh hour in a placesheâd never seen him before, carrying a micro-scope down the hall on the third floor. It was atleast twice as nice as seeing him somewhere sheexpected him to be.
298/593
CHAPTER 28
Park
He called his mom during lunch to tell her thatEleanor was coming over. His counselor let himuse her phone. (Mrs Dunne loved the opportunityto be good in a crisis, so all Park had to do wasimply that it was an emergency.)
âI just wanted to tell you that Eleanor is com-ing over after school,â he told his mom. âDad saidit was all right.â
âFine,â his mother said, not even pretendingthat she was okay with it. âIs she staying fordinner?â
âI donât know,â Park said. âProbably not.âHis mother sighed.âYou have to be nice to her, you know.â
âIâm nice to everybody,â his mom said. âYouknow that.â
He could tell Eleanor was nervous on the bus.She was quiet, and she kept running her bottomlip through her teeth, making it go white, so thatyou could see that her lips had freckles, too.
Park tried to get her to talk about Watchmen;theyâd just read the fourth chapter. âWhat do youthink of the pirate story?â he asked.
âWhat pirate story?ââYou know, thereâs that character whoâs al-
ways reading a comic book about pirates, thestory within the story, the pirate story.â
âI always skip that part,â she said.âYou skip it?ââItâs boring. Blah, blah, blah â pirates! â blah,
blah, blah.ââNothing Alan Moore writes can be blah-
blah-blahed,â Park said solemnly.Eleanor shrugged and bit her lip.âIâm beginning to think you shouldnât have
started reading comics with a book that
300/593
completely deconstructs the last fifty years of thegenre,â he said.
âAll Iâm hearing is blah, blah, blah, genre.âThe bus stopped near Eleanorâs house. She
looked at him.âWe may as well get off at my stop,â Park
said, âright?âEleanor shrugged again.They got off at his stop, along with Steve and
Tina and most of the people who sat at the backof the bus. All the back-of-the-bus kids hung outin Steveâs garage when he wasnât at work, evenin winter.
Park and Eleanor trailed behind them.âIâm sorry I look so stupid today,â she said.âYou look like you always do,â he said. Her
bag was hanging at the end of her arm. He triedto take it, but she pulled away.
âI always look stupid?ââThatâs not what I meant â¦ââItâs what you said,â she muttered.
301/593
He wanted to ask her not to be mad rightnow. Like, anytime but now. She could be mad athim for no reason all day tomorrow, if shewanted to.
âYou really know how to make a girl feelspecial,â Eleanor said.
âIâve never pretended to know anything aboutgirls,â he answered.
âThatâs not what I heard,â she said. âI heardyou were allowed to have girl-zzz in your roomâ¦â
âThey were there,â he said, âbut I didnât learnanything.â
They both stopped on his porch. He took herbag from her and tried not to look nervous.Eleanor was looking down the walk, like shemight bolt.
âI meant that you donât look any differentthan you usually look,â he said softly, just in casehis mom was standing on the other side of thedoor. âAnd you always look nice.â
302/593
âI never look nice,â she said. Like he was anidiot.
âI like the way you look,â he said. It came outmore like an argument than a compliment.
âThat doesnât mean itâs nice.â She was whis-pering, too.
âFine then, you look like a hobo.ââA hobo?â Her eyes lit.âYeah, a gypsy hobo,â he said. âYou look like
you just joined the cast of Godspell.ââI donât even know what that is.ââItâs terrible.âShe stepped closer to him. âI look like a
hobo?ââWorse,â he said. âLike a sad hobo clown.ââAnd you like it?ââI love it.âAs soon as he said it, she broke into a smile.
And when Eleanor smiled, something broke in-side of him.
Something always did.
303/593
Eleanor
It was probably a good thing that Parkâs momopened the door when she did because Eleanorwas thinking about kissing him, and no way wasthat a good idea â Eleanor didnât know the firstthing about kissing.
Of course, sheâd watched a million kisses onTV (thank you, Fonzie), but TV never showedyou the mechanics of it. If Eleanor tried to kissPark, it would be like a real-life version of somelittle girl making her Barbie kiss Ken. Justsmashing their faces together.
Besides, if Parkâs mom had opened the doorright in the middle of a big, awkward kiss, sheâdhate Eleanor even more.
Parkâs mom did hate her, you could tell. Ormaybe she just hated the idea of Eleanor, of a girlseducing her firstborn son right in her own livingroom.
Eleanor followed Park in and sat down. Shetried to look extra polite. When his mom offeredthem a snack, Eleanor said, âThat would be great,
304/593
thank you.â His mom was looking at Eleanor likeshe was something somebody had spilled on thebaby-blue couch. She brought out cookies, thenleft them alone.
Park seemed so happy. Eleanor tried to con-centrate on how nice it was to be with him â butit was taking too much of her concentration, justkeeping herself together.
It was the little things about Parkâs house thatreally freaked her out. Like all the glass grapeshanging from everything. And the curtains thatmatched the sofa that matched the little doily-napkins under the lamps.
Youâd think that nobody interesting couldgrow up in a house as nice and boring as this oneâ but Park was the smartest, funniest guy sheâdever met, and this was his home planet.
Eleanor wanted to feel superior to Parkâsmom and her Avon-lady house. But, instead, shekept thinking about how nice it must be to live ina house like this one. With your own room. And
305/593
your own parents. And six different kinds ofcookies in the cupboard.
Park
Eleanor was right. She never looked nice. Shelooked like art, and art wasnât supposed to looknice; it was supposed to make you feelsomething.
Eleanor sitting next to him on the couch madePark feel like someone had opened a window inthe middle of the room. Like someone had re-placed all the air in the room with brand new, im-proved air (now with twice the freshness).
Eleanor made him feel like something washappening. Even when they were just sitting onthe couch.
She wouldnât let him hold her hand, not in hishouse, and she wouldnât stay for dinner. But sheagreed to come back tomorrow â if his parentssaid it was okay, which they did.
306/593
His mom was being perfectly nice so far. Shewasnât turning on the charm, like she did for herclients and the neighbors, but she wasnât beingrude either. And if she wanted to hide in the kit-chen every time Eleanor came over, Parkthought, that was her prerogative.
Eleanor came over again on Thursday after-noon and Friday. And on Saturday, while theywere playing Nintendo with Josh, his dad askedher to stay for dinner.
Park couldnât believe it when she said yes.His dad put the leaf into the dining room table,and Eleanor sat right next to Park. She wasnervous, he could tell. She barely touched hersloppy joe, and after a while her smile started togo all grimacey around the edges.
After dinner, they all watched Back to the Fu-ture on HBO, and his mom made popcorn. Elean-or sat with Park on the floor, leaning against thecouch, and when he surreptitiously took herhand, she didnât pull away. He rubbed the inside
307/593
of her palm because he knew she liked it. It madeher eyelids dip like she was going to fall asleep.
When the movie was over, Parkâs dad in-sisted that Park walk Eleanor home.
âThanks for having me, Mr Sheridan,â shesaid. âAnd thank you for dinner, Mrs Sheridan. Itwas delicious, I had a great time.â She didnâteven sound like she was being sarcastic.
When they got to the door, she called back,âGood night!â
Park closed the door behind them. You couldalmost see all the nervous niceness draining outof Eleanor. He wanted to hug her, to help wring itout.
âYou canât walk me home,â she said with herusual edge, âyou know that, right?â
âI know. But I can walk you partway.ââI donât know â¦ââCome on,â he said, âitâs dark. No one will
see us.ââOkay,â she said, but she put her hands in her
pockets. They both walked slowly.
308/593
âYour family is really great,â she said after aminute. âReally.â
He took her arm. âHey, I want to show yousomething.â He pulled her into the next driveway,between a pine tree and an RV.
âPark, this is trespassing.ââItâs not. My grandparents live here.ââWhat do you want to show me?ââNothing, really, I just want to be alone with
you for a minute.âHe pulled her to the back of the driveway,
where they were almost completely hidden by aline of trees and the RV and the garage.
âSeriously?â she said. âThat was so lame.ââI know,â he said, turning to her. âNext time,
Iâll just say, âEleanor, follow me down this darkalley, I want to kiss you.ââ
She didnât roll her eyes. She took a breath,then closed her mouth. He was learning how tocatch her off guard.
She pushed her hands deeper in her pockets,so he put his hands on her elbows instead. âNext
309/593
time,â he said, âIâll just say, âEleanor, duck be-hind these bushes with me, Iâm going to lose mymind if I donât kiss you.ââ
She didnât move, so he thought it was prob-ably okay to touch her face. Her skin was as softas it looked, white and smooth as freckledporcelain.
âIâll just say, âEleanor, follow me down thisrabbit hole â¦ââ
He laid his thumb on her lips to see if sheâdpull away. She didnât. He leaned closer. Hewanted to close his eyes, but he didnât trust hernot to leave him standing there.
When his lips were almost touching hers, sheshook her head. Her nose rubbed against his.
âIâve never done this before,â she said.âSâokay,â he said.âItâs not, itâs going to be terrible.âHe shook his head. âItâs not.âShe shook her head a little more. Just a little.
âYouâre going to regret this,â she said.
310/593
That made him laugh, so he had to wait asecond before he kissed her.
It wasnât terrible. Eleanorâs lips were soft andwarm, and he could feel her pulse in her cheek. Itwas good that she was so nervous â because itforced him not to be. It steadied him to feel hertrembling.
He pulled away before he wanted to. Hehadnât done this enough to know how to breathe.
When he pulled away, her eyes were mostlyclosed. His grandparents had a light on, on theirfront porch, and Eleanorâs face caught every bitof it. She looked like she should be married to theman in the moon.
Her face dropped after a second, and he lethis hand fall to her shoulder.
âOkay?â he whispered.She nodded. He pulled her closer and kissed
the top her head. He tried to find her ear under allthat hair.
âCome here,â he said, âI want to show yousomething.â
311/593
She laughed. He lifted her chin.The second time was even less terrible.
Eleanor
They walked together from his grandparentsâdriveway to the alley, then Park waited there inthe shadows and watched Eleanor walk homealone.
She told herself not to look back.
Richie was home, and everybody except hermom was watching TV. It wasnât that late;Eleanor tried to act like there was nothing strangeabout her coming home in the dark.
âWhere have you been?â Richie said.âAt a friendâs house.ââWhat friend?ââI told you, honey,â her mom said, stepping
into the room, drying a pan. âEleanor has a girl-friend in the neighborhood. Lisa.â
âTina,â Eleanor said.
312/593
âGirlfriend, huh?â Richie said. âGiving up onmen already?â He thought that was pretty funny.
Eleanor went into the bedroom and closed thedoor. She didnât turn on the light. She climbedinto bed in her street clothes, opened the curtainsand wiped the condensation off the window. Shecouldnât see the alley or anything movingoutside.
The window fogged over again. Eleanorclosed her eyes and laid her forehead against theglass.
313/593
CHAPTER 29
Eleanor
When she saw Park standing at the bus stop onMonday morning, she started giggling. Seriously,giggling like a cartoon character ⦠when theircheeks get all red, and little hearts start poppingout of their ears â¦
It was ridiculous.
Park
When he saw Eleanor walking toward him onMonday morning, Park wanted to run to her andsweep her up in his arms. Like some guy in thesoap operas his mom watched. He hung onto hisbackpack to hold himself back â¦
It was kind of wonderful.
Eleanor
Park was just her height, but he seemed taller.
Park
Eleanorâs eyelashes were the same color as herfreckles.
Eleanor
They talked about The White Album on the wayto school, but just as an excuse to stare at eachotherâs mouths. Youâd think they were lip-reading.
Maybe thatâs why Park kept laughing, evenwhen they were talking about âHelter Skelterâ âwhich wasnât the Beatlesâ funniest song, even be-fore Charles Manson got a hold of it.
315/593
CHAPTER 30
Park
âHey,â Cal said, taking a bite out of his Rib-a-Que sandwich. âYou should come to the basket-ball game with us Thursday. And donât even tryto tell me you donât like basketball, Spud.â
âI donât know â¦ââKimâs going to be there.âPark groaned. âCal â¦ââSitting next to me,â Cal said. âBecause weâre
totally going out.ââWait, seriously?â Park covered his mouth to
keep a chunk of sandwich from flying out. âArewe talking about the same Kim?â
âIs that so hard to believe?â Cal opened hiscarton of milk completely and drank out of it likea cup. âShe wasnât even into you, you know. She
was just bored, and she thought you were myster-ious and quiet â like, âstill waters run deep.â Itold her that sometimes still waters just run still.â
âThanks.ââBut sheâs totally into me now, so you can
hang out with us if you want. The basketballgames are a blast. They sell nachos andeverything.â
âIâll think about it,â Park said.He wasnât going to think about it. He wasnât
going anywhere without Eleanor. And she didnâtseem like the basketball game type.
Eleanor
âHey, girl,â DeNice said after gym class. Theywere in the locker room, changing back into theirstreet clothes. âSo Iâve been thinking, youâve gotto go to Sprite Nite with us this week. Jonesyâsgot his car fixed, and heâs got this Thursday off.We are going to do it right, right, right, allthrough the night, night, night.â
317/593
âYou know Iâm not allowed to go out,â Elean-or said.
âI know that youâre not allowed to go to yourboyfriendâs house either,â DeNice said.
âI heard that,â Beebi said.Eleanor should never have told them about
Parkâs house, but sheâd been dying to tell some-body. (This was how people ended up in jail aftercommitting the perfect crime.) âKeep it down,âshe said. âGod.â
âYou should come,â Beebi said. Her face wasperfectly round, with dimples so deep that whenshe smiled she looked tufted, like a cushion. âWehave so much fun. Iâll bet youâve never evenbeen dancing before.â
âI donât know â¦â Eleanor said.âIs this about your man?â DeNice asked. âBe-
cause he can come, too. He donât take up muchspace.â
Beebi giggled, so Eleanor giggled, too. Shecouldnât imagine Park dancing. Heâd probably be
318/593
really good at it, if all the Top 40 music didnâtmake his ears bleed. He was good at everything.
Still ⦠She couldnât imagine the two of themgoing out with DeNice or Beebi. Or anybody.Thinking about going out with Park, in public,was kind of like thinking about taking your hel-met off in space.
Park
His mom said that if they were going to hang outevery night after school, which they definitelywere, they had to start doing homework.
âSheâs probably right,â Eleanor said on thebus. âIâve been faking it in English all week.â
âYou were faking it today? Seriously? Itdidnât sound like it.â
âWe did Shakespeare last year at my oldschool ⦠But I canât fake it in math. I canât even⦠whatâs the opposite of faking it?â
âI can help you with your math, you know.Iâm already through algebra.â
319/593
âGosh, Wally, thatâd be dreamy.ââOr not,â he said. âI could not help you with
your math.âEven her mean, smirky smile made him
crazy.
They tried to study in the living room, but Joshwanted to watch TV, so they took their stuff intothe kitchen.
His mom said it was okay; then said she hadstuff to do in the garage. Whatever.
Eleanor moved her lips when she read â¦Park kicked her gently under the table, and
threw crumpled-up pieces of paper into her hair.They were almost never alone, and now that theyalmost-practically were, he felt kind of frantic forher attention.
He flipped her algebra book closed with hispen.
âSeriously?â She tried to open it again.âNo,â he said, pulling it toward him.âI thought we were studying.ââI know,â he said, âI just ⦠weâre alone.â
320/593
âSort of â¦ââSo we should be doing alone things.ââYou sound so creepy right now â¦ââI meant talking.â He wasnât sure what he
meant. He looked down at the table. Eleanorâs al-gebra book was covered with her handwriting,the lyrics to one song wrapped and coiled aroundthe title of another. He saw his name written intiny cursive letters â your own name alwaysstands out â and hidden in the chorus of a Smithssong.
He felt himself grin.âWhat?â Eleanor asked.âNothing.ââWhat.âHe looked back at the book. He was going to
think about this later, after she went home. Hewas going to think about Eleanor sitting in class,thinking about him, carefully writing his namesomeplace she thought only she would see.
321/593
And then he noticed something else. Writtenjust as small, just as carefully, in all lowercaseletters. âi know your a slut you smell like cum.â
âWhat,â Eleanor said, trying to pull the bookaway. Park held onto it. He felt the Bruce Bannerblood rushing to his face.
âWhy didnât you tell me that this was stillhappening?â
âThat what was still happening?âHe didnât want to say it, he didnât want to
point to it. He didnât want their eyes on thosewords together.
âThis,â he said, waving his hand over thewords.
She looked â and immediately started scrub-bing the bad writing out with her pen. Her facewas skim milk, and her neck went red andblotchy.
âWhy didnât you tell me?â he said.âI didnât know it was there.ââI thought this had stopped.ââWhy would you think that?â
322/593
Why had he thought that? Because she waswith him now?
âI just ⦠why didnât you tell me about this?ââWhy would I tell you?â she asked. âItâs gross
and embarrassing.âShe was still scribbling. He put his hand over
her wrist. âMaybe I could help.ââHelp how?â She shoved the book toward
him. âDo you want to kick it?âHe clenched his teeth. She took the book
back and put it in her bag.âDo you know whoâs doing it?â he asked.âAre you going to kick them?ââMaybe â¦ââWell â¦â she said, âIâve narrowed it down to
people who donât like me â¦ââIt couldnât be just anyone. It would have to
be somebody who could get to your bookswithout you knowing about it.â
Ten seconds ago, Eleanor had looked mean asa cat. Now she looked resigned, slumped over thetable with her fingertips at her temples.
323/593
âI donât know â¦â She shook her head. âItseems like it always happens on gym days.â
âDo you leave your books in the lockerroom?â
She rubbed her eyes with both hands. âI feellike now youâre intentionally asking me stupidquestions. Youâre like the worst detective ever.â
âWho doesnât like you in gym class?ââHa.â She was still covering her face. âWho
doesnât like me in gym class.ââYou need to take this seriously,â he said.âNo,â she said firmly, squeezing her hands in-
to fists, âthis is exactly the sort of thing Ishouldnât take seriously. Thatâs exactly whatTina and her henchgirls want me to do. If theythink theyâre getting to me? Theyâll never leaveme alone.â
âWhat does Tina have to do with this?ââTina is the queen of the people in my gym
class who donât like me.ââTina would never do anything this bad.â
324/593
Eleanor looked hard at him. âAre you kid-ding? Tinaâs a monster. Sheâs what would hap-pen if the devil married the wicked witch, andthey rolled their baby in a bowl of chopped evil.â
Park thought of the Tina who sold him out inthe garage and made fun of people on the bus â¦But then he thought of all the times that Stevehad gone after Park, and Tina had pulled himback.
âIâve known Tina since we were kids,â hesaid. âSheâs not that bad. We used to be friends.â
âYou donât act like friends.ââWell, sheâs dating Steve now.ââWhy does that matter?âPark couldnât think of how to answer.âWhy does it matter?â Eleanorâs eyes were
dark slits in her face. If he lied to her about this,sheâd never forgive him.
âNone of it matters now,â he said. âItâs stupid⦠Tina and I went together in the sixth grade.Not that we ever went anywhere or did anything.â
âTina? You went with Tina?â
325/593
âIt was the sixth grade. It was nothing.ââBut you were boyfriend and girlfriend? Did
you hold hands?ââI donât remember.ââDid you kiss her?ââNone of this matters.âBut it did. Because it was making Eleanor
look at him like he was a stranger. It was makinghim feel like a stranger. He knew that Tina had amean streak, but he also knew that she wouldnâtgo this far.
What did he know about Eleanor? Not much.It was like she didnât want him to know her bet-ter. He felt everything for Eleanor, but what didhe really know?
âYou always write in lowercase letters â¦âSaying this out loud seemed like a good idea onlyfor as long as the words were on his tongue, buthe kept talking. âDid you write those thingsyourself?â
326/593
Eleanor paled from pale to ashen. It was likeall the blood in her body rushed to her heart, allat once. Her speckled lips hung open.
Then she snapped out of it. She started stack-ing her books.
âIf I were going to write a note to myself,calling myself a dirty slut,â she said it matter-of-factly, âyouâre right, I might not use capital let-ters. But I would definitely use an apostrophe â¦and probably a period. Iâm a huge fan ofpunctuation.â
âWhat are you doing?â he asked.She shook her head and stood up. He couldnât
for the life of him think of how to stop her.âI donât know whoâs been writing on my
books,â she said coolly. âBut I think we justsolved the mystery of why Tina hates me somuch.â
âEleanor â¦ââNo,â she said, her voice catching. âI donât
want to talk anymore.â
327/593
She walked out of the kitchen, just as Parkâsmom was coming in from garage. His momlooked at Park with a face he was beginning torecognize. What do you see in this weird whitegirl?
Park
That night, Park lay in bed thinking about Elean-or thinking about him, writing his name on herbook.
Sheâd probably already scribbled that out,too.
He tried to think about why heâd defendedTina.
Why did it matter to him whether Tina wasgood or bad? Eleanor was right, he and Tina wer-enât friends. They werenât anything like friends.They hadnât even been friends in the sixth grade.
Tina had asked Park to go with her, and Parkhad said yes â because everybody knew that Tinawas the most popular girl in class. Going with
328/593
Tina was such powerful social currency, Parkwas still spending it.
Being Tinaâs first boyfriend kept Park out ofthe lowest neighborhood caste. Even though theyall thought Park was weird and yellow, eventhough he had never fit in ⦠They couldnât callhim a freak or a chink or a fag because â wellfirst, because his dad was a giant and a veteranand from the neighborhood. But second, becausewhat would that say about Tina?
And Tina had never turned on Park or preten-ded he didnât happen. In fact ⦠Well. Therewere times when he thought she wantedsomething to happen between them again.
Like, a few times, sheâd come over to Parkâshouse on the wrong day for her hair appointmentâ and ended up in Parkâs room, trying to findsomething for them to talk about.
On homecoming night, when she came overto have her hair put up, sheâd stopped in Parkâsroom to ask what he thought of her strapless blue
329/593
dress. Sheâd had him untangle her necklace fromthe hair at the back of her neck.
Park always let these opportunities pass likehe didnât see them.
Steve would kill him if he hooked up withTina.
Plus, Park didnât want to hook up with Tina.They didnât have anything in common â like,nothing â and it wasnât the kind of nothing thatcan be exotic and exciting. It was just boring.
He didnât even think Tina really liked him,deep down. It was more like she didnât want himto get over her. And not-so-deep down, Parkdidnât want Tina to get over him.
It was nice to have the most popular girl inthe neighborhood offering herself to him everynow and then.
Park rolled onto his stomach and pushed hisface into his pillow. Heâd thought he was overcaring what people thought about him. Heâdthought that loving Eleanor proved that.
330/593
But he kept finding new pockets of shallowinside himself. He kept finding new ways to be-tray her.
331/593
CHAPTER 31
Eleanor
There was just one more day of school left beforeChristmas vacation. Eleanor didnât go. She toldher mother she was sick.
Park
When he got to the bus stop Friday morning,Park was ready to apologize. But Eleanor didnâtshow up. Which made him feel a lot less likeapologizing â¦
âWhat now?â he said in the direction of herhouse. Were they supposed to break up over this?Was she going to go three weeks without talkingto him?
He knew it wasnât Eleanorâs fault that shedidnât have a phone, and that her house was theFortress of Solitude, but ⦠Jesus. It made it soeasy for her to cut herself off whenever she feltlike it.
âIâm sorry,â he said at her house, too loudly.A dog started barking in the yard next to him.âSorry,â Park muttered to the dog.
The bus turned the corner and heaved to astop. Park could see Tina in the back window,watching him.
Iâm sorry, he thought, not looking back again.
Eleanor
With Richie at work all day, she didnât have tostay in her room, but she did anyway. Like a dogwho wonât leave its kennel.
She ran out of batteries. She ran out of thingsto read â¦
She lay in bed so much, she actually feltdizzy when she got up Sunday afternoon to eat
333/593
dinner. (Her mom said Eleanor had to come outof her crypt if she was hungry.) Eleanor sat onthe living room floor next to Mouse.
âWhy are you crying?â he asked. He washolding a bean burrito and it was dripping ontohis T-shirt and the floor.
âIâm not,â she said.Mouse held the burrito over his head and
tried to catch the leak with his mouth. âYeh ooare.â
Maisie looked up at Eleanor, then back at theTV.
âIs it because you hate Dad?â Mouse asked.âYes,â Eleanor said.âEleanor,â her mother said, walking out of the
kitchen.âNo,â Eleanor said to Mouse, shaking her
head. âI told you, Iâm not crying.â She went backto her room and climbed into bed, rubbing herface in the pillow.
Nobody followed her to see what was wrong.
334/593
Maybe her mom realized that sheâd prettymuch forfeited the right to ask questions for alleternity when she dumped Eleanor at somebodyâshouse for a year.
Or maybe just she didnât care.Eleanor rolled onto her back and picked up
her dead Walkman. She took out the tape andheld it up to the light, turning the reels with herfingertip and looking at Parkâs handwriting onthe label.
âNever mind the Sex Pistols ⦠Songs Elean-or might like.â
Park thought sheâd written those awful thingson her books herself.
And heâd taken Tinaâs side against hers.Tinaâs.
She closed her eyes again and rememberedthe first time that he kissed her ⦠How sheâd lether neck bend back, how sheâd opened hermouth. How sheâd believed him when he said shewas special.
335/593
Park
A week into break, his dad asked Park if he andEleanor had broken up.
âSort of,â Park said.âThatâs too bad,â his dad said.âIt is?ââWell, it must be. Youâre acting like a four-
year-old lost at Kmart â¦Park sighed.âCanât you get her back?â his dad askedâI canât even get her to talk to me.ââItâs too bad you canât talk to your mother
about this. The only way I know how to land agirl is to look sharp in a uniform.â
Eleanor
A week into break, Eleanorâs mom woke her upbefore sunrise. âDo you want to walk to the storewith me?â
âNo,â Eleanor said.âCome on, I could use the extra hands.â
336/593
Her mom walked fast, and she had long legs.Eleanor had to take extra steps just to keep up.âItâs cold,â she said.
âI told you to wear a hat.â Her mom had toldher to wear socks, too, but they looked ridiculouswith Eleanorâs Vans.
It was a forty-minute walk.When they got to the grocery store, her mom
bought them each a day-old cream horn and acup of twenty-five-cent coffee. Eleanor dumpedCoffee-Mate and SweetâN Low in hers, and fol-lowed her mom to the bargain bin. Her mom hadthis thing about being the first person to gothrough all the smashed cereal boxes and dentedcans â¦
Afterward, they walked to the Goodwill, andEleanor found a stack of old Analog magazinesand settled in on the least disgusting couch in thefurniture section.
When it was time to go, her mom came upfrom behind her with an incredibly ugly stockingcap and pulled it over her head.
337/593
âGreat,â Eleanor said, ânow I have lice.âShe felt better on the way home. (Which was
probably the point of this whole field trip.) It wasstill cold, but the sun was shining, and her momwas humming that Joni Mitchell song aboutclouds and circuses.
Eleanor almost told her everything.About Park and Tina and the bus and the
fight, about the place between his grandparentsâhouse and the RV.
She felt it all right at the back of her throat,like a bomb â or a tiger â sitting on the base ofher tongue. Keeping it in made her eyes water.
The plastic shopping bags were cutting intoher palms. Eleanor shook her head andswallowed.
Park
Park rode his bike by her house over and overone day until her stepdadâs truck was gone and
338/593
one of the other kids came outside to play in thesnow.
It was the older boy, Park couldnât rememberhis name. The kid scuttled up the steps nervouslywhen Park stopped in front of the house.
âHey, wait,â Park said, âplease, hey ⦠is yoursister home?â
âMaisie?ââNo, Eleanor â¦ââIâm not telling you,â the boy said, running
into the house.Park jerked his bike forward and pedaled
away.
339/593
CHAPTER 32
Eleanor
The box of pineapple arrived on Christmas Eve.Youâd have thought Santa Claus had shown up inperson with a bag of toys for each of them.
Maisie and Ben were already fighting overthe box. Maisie wanted it for her Barbies. Bendidnât have anything to put in it, but Eleanor stillhoped heâd win.
Ben had just turned twelve, and Richie saidhe was too old to share a room with girls and ba-bies. Richie had brought home a mattress and putit in the basement, and now Ben had to sleepdown there with the dog and Richieâs freeweights.
In their old house, Ben wouldnât even godown to the basement to put clothes in the wash â
and that basement had at least been dry andmostly finished. Ben was scared of mice and batsand spiders and anything that started movingwhen the lights went out. Richie had alreadyyelled at him, twice, for trying to sleep at the topof the stairs.
The pineapple came with a letter from theiruncle and his wife. Eleanorâs mom read it first,and it made her get all teary. âOh, Eleanor,â shesaid excitedly, âGeoff wants you to come up forthe summer. He says thereâs a program at his uni-versity, a camp for gifted high school studentsâ¦â
Before Eleanor could even think about whatthat meant â St Paul, a camp where nobody knewher, where nobody was Park â Richie was shoot-ing it down.
âYou canât send her up to Minnesota byherself.â
âMy brotherâs there.ââWhat does he know about teenage girls?ââYou know I lived with him in high school.â
341/593
âYeah, and he let you get pregnant â¦âBen was lying solidly on top of the pineapple
box, and Maisie was kicking him in the back.They were both shouting.
âItâs just a fucking box,â Richie yelled. âIf Iknew that you wanted boxes for Christmas, Iwould have saved myself some money.â
That silenced everyone. Nobody had expec-ted Richie to buy Christmas presents. âI shouldmake you wait until Christmas morning,â he said,âbut Iâm sick of watching this.â
He put his cigarette in his mouth and put hisboots on. They heard the truck door open, andthen Richie was back with a big ShopKo bag. Hestarted throwing boxes onto the floor.
âMouse,â he said. A remote-control monstertruck.
âBen.â A big racetrack.âMaisie ⦠cause you like to sing.â Richie
pulled out a keyboard, an actual electronic key-board. It was probably some off-brand, but still.
342/593
He didnât drop it on the floor. He handed it toMaisie.
âAnd Little Richie ⦠whereâs Little Richie?ââHeâs taking a nap,â their mom said.Richie shrugged and threw a teddy bear onto
the floor. The bag was empty, and Eleanor feltcold with relief.
Then Richie took out his wallet and pulledout a bill.
âHere, Eleanor, come get it. Buy yourselfsome normal clothes.â
She looked at her mother, standing blank-faced in the kitchen doorway, then walked overto take the money. It was a fifty.
âThank you.â Eleanor said it as flatly as pos-sible. Then she went to sit on the couch. The littlekids were all opening their presents.
âThanks, Dad,â Mouse kept saying. âOh man,thanks, Dad!â
âYeah,â Richie said, âyouâre welcome. Youârewelcome. Thatâs a real Christmas.â
343/593
Richie stayed home all day to watch the littlekids play with their toys. Maybe the Broken Railwasnât open on Christmas Eve. Eleanor went toher bedroom to get away from him. (And to getaway from Maisieâs new keyboard.)
She was tired of missing Park. She justwanted to see him. Even if he did think she was aperverted psychopath who wrote herself badlypunctuated threats. Even if he had spent hisformative years tongue-kissing Tina. None of itwas vile enough to make Eleanor stop wantinghim. (How vile would that have to be? shewondered.)
Maybe she should just go over to his houseright now and pretend that nothing had happened.Maybe she would, if it wasnât Christmas Eve.Why didnât Jesus ever work with her?
Later, her mom came in to say they were going tothe store to buy groceries for Christmas dinner.
âIâll come out and watch the kids,â Eleanorsaid.
344/593
âRichie wants us all to go,â her mom said,smiling, âas a family.â
âBut, Mom â¦ââNone of this, Eleanor,â she said softly,
âweâre having a good day.ââMom, come on â heâs been drinking all day.âHer mom shook her head. âRichieâs fine, he
never has a problem with driving.ââI donât think the fact that he drinks and
drives all the time is a very good argument.ââYou just canât stand this, can you?â her mom
said quietly, angrily, stepping into the room andshutting the door behind her.
âLook,â she said, âI know that youâre goingthrough â¦â She looked at Eleanor, then shookher head again. âSomething. But everyone else inthis house is having a great day. Everyone else inthis house deserves a great day.
âWeâre a family, Eleanor. All of us. Richie,too. And Iâm sorry that makes you so unhappy.Iâm sorry that things arenât perfect here all thetime for you ⦠But this is our life now. You
345/593
canât keep throwing tantrums about it, you canâtkeep trying to undermine this family â I wonât letyou.â
Eleanor clenched her jaw.âI have to think of everyone,â her mom said.
âDo you understand? I have to think of myself. Ina few years, youâll be on your own, but Richie ismy husband.â
She almost sounded sane, Eleanor thought. Ifyou didnât know that she was acting rational onthe far side of crazy.
âGet up,â her mother said, âand put on yourcoat.â
Eleanor put on her coat and her new hat andfollowed her brothers and sisters into the back ofthe Isuzu.
When they got to Food 4 Less, Richie waitedin the truck while everybody else went in. Assoon as they were inside, Eleanor put thewadded-up fifty in her motherâs hand.
Her mother didnât thank her.
346/593
Park
They were shopping for Christmas dinner, and itwas taking forever because it always made Parkâsmom nervous to cook for his grandmother.
âWhat kind of stuffing Grandma like?â hismom asked.
âPepperidge Farm,â Park said, standing on theback of the cart and popping a wheelie.
âPepperidge Farm original? Or PepperidgeFarm cornbread?â
âI donât know, original.ââIf you donât know, donât tell me ⦠Look,â
she said, looking over his shoulder. âThereâs yourEleanor.â
El-la-no.Park whipped around and saw Eleanor stand-
ing by the meat case with all four of her red-headed brothers and sisters. (Except none of themhad red hair standing next to Eleanor. Nobodydid.)
A woman walked up to the cart and set downa turkey.
347/593
That must be Eleanorâs mom, Park thought,she looked just like her. But sharper and withmore shadows. Like Eleanor, but taller. LikeEleanor, but tired. Like Eleanor, after the fall.
Parkâs mom was staring at them, too.âMom, come on,â Park whispered.âArenât you going to say hi?â she asked.Park shook his head, but didnât turn away. He
didnât think Eleanor would want him to, and evenif she did, he didnât want to get her in trouble.What if her stepdad was here, too?
Eleanor looked different, drabber than usual.There was nothing hanging from her hair ormagpie-tied to her wrists â¦
She still looked beautiful. His eyes missedher as much as the rest of him. He wanted to runto her and tell her â tell her how sorry he was andhow much he needed her.
She didnât see him.âMom,â he whispered again, âcome on.â
Park thought his mom might say something moreabout it in the car, but she was quiet. When they
348/593
got home, she said she was tired. She asked Parkto bring in the groceries, then she spent the restof the afternoon in her room with the door closed.
His dad went in to check on her at dinnertime, and an hour later, when they both came out,his dad said they were going to Pizza Hut for din-ner. âOn Christmas Eve?â Josh said. They alwayshad waffles and watched movies on ChristmasEve. Theyâd already rented Billy Jack. âGet in thecar,â his dad said. Parkâs momâs eyes were red,and she didnât bother reapplying her eye makeupbefore they left.
When they got home, Park went straight tohis room. He just wanted to be alone to thinkabout seeing Eleanor â but his mom came in afew minutes later. She sat on his bed withoutmaking a single wave.
She held out a Christmas present. âThis ⦠isfor your Eleanor,â she said. âFrom me.â
Park looked at the gift. He took it, but shookhis head.
349/593
âI donât know if Iâll have a chance to give itto her.â
âYour Eleanor,â she said, âshe come from bigfamily.â
Park shook the present gently.âI come from big family,â his mom said.
âThree little sisters. Three little brothers.â Sheheld out her hand, as if she were patting sixheads.
Sheâd had a wine cooler with dinner, and youcould tell. She almost never talked about Korea.
âWhat were their names?â Park asked.His momâs hand settled gently in her lap.âIn big family,â she said, âeverything â¦
everybody spread so thin. Thin like paper, youknow?â She made a tearing gesture. âYou know?â
Maybe two wine coolers.âIâm not sure,â Park said.âNobody gets enough,â she said. âNobody
gets what they need. When you always hungry,you get hungry in your head.â She tapped herforehead. âYou know?â
350/593
Park wasnât sure what to say.âYou donât know,â she said, shaking her head.
âI donât want you to know ⦠Iâm sorry.ââDonât be sorry,â he said.âIâm sorry for how I welcomed your Eleanor.ââMom, itâs okay. This isnât your fault.ââI donât think I say this right â¦ââItâs okay, Mindy,â Parkâs dad said softly
from the doorway. âCome to bed, honey.â Hewalked over to the bed and helped Parkâs momup, then stood with his arm wrapped protectivelyaround her. âYour mom just wants you to behappy,â he said to Park. âDonât puss out on ouraccount.â
His mother frowned, like she wasnât surewhether that counted as a dirty word.
Park waited until the TV was off in his parentsâroom. Then he waited a half-hour after that. Thenhe grabbed his coat and slipped out the backdoor, on the far side of the house.
He ran until he got to the end of the alley.Eleanor was so close.
351/593
Her stepdadâs truck was in the driveway.Maybe that was good; Park wouldnât want himcoming home while Park was standing there onthe front porch. All the lights were off, as far asPark could tell, and there was no sign of the dogâ¦
He climbed the steps as quietly as possible.He knew which room was Eleanorâs. Sheâd
told him once that she slept by the window, andhe knew she had the top bunk. He stood to theside of the window, so he wouldnât cast a shad-ow. He was going to tap softly, and if anyone butEleanor looked out, he was going to run for hislife.
Park tapped the top of the glass. Nothinghappened. The curtain, or the sheet or whatever itwas, didnât move.
She was probably sleeping. He tapped a littleharder and got ready to run. The side of the sheetopened just a sliver, but he couldnât see in.
Should he run? Should he hide?
352/593
He stepped in front of the window. The sheetopened wider. He could see Eleanorâs face, shelooked terrified.
âGo,â she mouthed.He shook his head.âGo,â she mouthed again. Then she pointed
away. âSchool,â she said. At least thatâs what hethought she said. Park ran away.
Eleanor
All Eleanor could think was that if somebodywere breaking in through this window, how wasshe supposed to escape and call 911?
Not that the police would even come after lasttime. But at least she could wake that bastard Gilup and eat his goddamn brownies.
Park was the last person she expected to seestanding there.
Her heart leapt out to him before she couldstop it. He was going to get them both killed.Shots had been fired for less.
353/593
As soon as he disappeared from the window,she slipped off the bed like that stupid cat and puther bra and shoes on in the dark. She was wear-ing a great big T-shirt and a pair of her dadâs oldflannel pajama pants. Her coat was in the livingroom, so she put on a sweater.
Maisie had fallen asleep watching TV, so itwas relatively easy to climb over her empty bedand out the window.
Heâll kick me out for real this time, Eleanorthought, tiptoeing across the porch. That wouldbe his best Christmas ever.
Park was waiting on the school steps. Wheretheyâd sat and read Watchmen. As soon as he sawher, he stood up and ran to her. Like, actuallyran.
He ran to her â and took her face in both ofhis hands. And then he was kissing her before shecould say no. And she was kissing him back be-fore she could remind herself that she wasnât evergoing to kiss anybody again, especially not him,because look how miserable it had made her.
354/593
She was crying, and so was Park. When sheput her hands on his cheeks, they were wet.
And warm. He was so warm.She bent her neck back and kissed him like
she never had before. Like she wasnât scared ofdoing it wrong.
He pulled away to say he was sorry, and sheshook her head no, because even though shereally did want him to be sorry, she wanted tokiss him more.
âIâm sorry, Eleanor.â He held her face againsthis. âI was wrong about everything. Everything.â
âIâm sorry, too,â she said.âFor what?ââFor acting mad at you all the time.ââItâs okay,â he said, âsometimes I like it.ââBut not always.âHe shook his head.âI donât even know why I do it,â she said.âIt doesnât matter.ââIâm not sorry about getting mad about Tina.â
355/593
He pressed his forehead against hers until ithurt. âDonât even say her name,â he said. âSheâsnothing and youâre ⦠everything. Youâreeverything, Eleanor.â
He kissed her again, and she opened hermouth.
They stayed outside until Park couldnât rub anywarmth back into her hands. Until her lips werenumb from cold and kissing.
He wanted to walk her back home, but shetold him that would be suicidal.
âCome see me tomorrow,â he said.âI canât, itâs Christmas.ââThe next day, then.ââThe next day,â she said.âAnd the day after that.âShe laughed. âI donât think your mom would
like that. I donât think she likes me.ââYouâre wrong,â he said. âCome.âEleanor was climbing the front steps when
she heard him whispering her name. She turnedback, but she couldnât see him in the shadows.
356/593
âMerry Christmas,â he said.She smiled, but didnât answer.
357/593
CHAPTER 33
Eleanor
Eleanor slept until noon on Christmas Day. Untilher mom finally came in and told her to wake up.
âAre you okay?â her mom asked.âIâm asleep.ââYou look like youâre getting a cold.ââDoes that mean I can go back to sleep?ââI guess so. Look, Eleanor â¦â her mother
stepped away from the door, and her voicedropped. âIâm going to talk to Richie about thissummer. I think I can get him to change his mindabout that camp.â
Eleanor opened her eyes. âNo. No, I donâtwant to go.â
âBut I thought youâd jump at the chance toget out of here.â
âNo,â Eleanor said, âI donât want to have toleave everybody ⦠again.â Saying it made herfeel like one hundred percent jerk, but sheâd sayanything to spend the summer with Park. (Andshe wasnât even going to tell herself that heâdprobably be sick of her by then.) âI want to stayhome,â she said.
Her mom nodded. âOkay,â she said, âthen Iwonât mention it. But if you change your mindâ¦â
âI wonât,â Eleanor said.Her mom left the room, and Eleanor preten-
ded to go back to sleep.
Park
He slept until noon on Christmas Day, until Joshcame in and sprayed him with one of their momâssalon water bottles.
âDad says that if you donât get up, heâs goingto let me have all your presents.â
Park beat Josh back with a pillow.
359/593
Everybody else was waiting for him, and thewhole house smelled like turkey. His grandmawanted him to open her present first â a newâKiss Me, Iâm Irishâ T-shirt. A size bigger thanlast yearâs, which meant it would be a size toobig.
His parents gave him a fifty-dollar gift certi-ficate to Drastic Plastic, the punk-rock recordstore downtown. (Park was surprised that theyâdthink of that. And he was surprised that DP soldgift certificates. Not very punk.)
He also got two black sweaters he might actu-ally wear, some Avon cologne in a bottle shapedlike an electric guitar, and an empty key ring âwhich his dad made sure everybody noticed.
Parkâs sixteenth birthday had come and gone,and he didnât even care anymore about gettinghis license and driving himself to school. Hewasnât going to give up his only guaranteed timewith Eleanor.
360/593
Sheâd already told him that as awesome aslast night was â and they both agreed it was awe-some â she couldnât risk sneaking out again.
âAny one of my siblings could have wokenup, they still could, and they would definitely tellon me. They have very confused allegiances.â
âBut if youâre quiet â¦âThatâs when sheâd told him that, most nights,
she shared a room with all of her brothers andsisters. All of them. A room about the size of his,she said, âminus the waterbed.â
They were sitting against the back door of theschool, in a little alcove where no one would seethem unless they were really looking, and wherethe snow didnât fall directly on their faces. Theysat next to each other, facing each other, holdinghands.
There was nothing between them now. Noth-ing stupid and selfish just taking up space.
âSo you have two brothers and two sisters?ââThree brothers, one sister.ââWhat are their names?â
361/593
âWhy?ââIâm just curious,â he said. âIs it classified?âShe sighed. âBen, Maisie â¦ââMaisie?ââYeah. Then Mouse â Jeremiah. Heâs five.
Then the baby. Little Richie.âPark laughed. âYou call him âLittle Richieâ?ââWell, his dad is Big Richie, not that heâs
very big either â¦ââI know, but like Little Richard? âTutti-
Fruttiâ?ââOh my God, I never thought of that. Why
havenât I ever thought of that?âHe pulled her hands to his chest. He still
hadnât managed to touch Eleanor anywhere be-low the chin or above the elbow. He didnât thinksheâd necessarily stop him if he tried, but what ifshe did? Thatâd be awful. Anyway, her hands andher face were excellent.
âDo you guys get along?ââSometimes ⦠Theyâre all crazy.ââHow can a five-year-old be crazy?â
362/593
âOh my God, Mouse? Heâs the craziest ofthem all. Heâs always got a hammer or a jackrab-bit or something stuck in his back pocket, and herefuses to wear a shirt.â
Park laughed. âHow is Maisie crazy?ââWell, sheâs mean. For starters. And she
fights like a street person. Like, take-off-your-earrings fights.â
âHow old is she?ââEight. No, nine.ââWhat about Ben?ââBen â¦â She looked away. âYouâve seen
Ben. Heâs almost Joshâs age. He needs a haircut.ââDoes Richie hate them, too?âEleanor pushed Parkâs hands forward. âWhy
do you want to talk about this?âHe pushed back. âBecause. Itâs your life. Be-
cause Iâm interested. Itâs like youâve got all theseweird barriers set up, like you only want me tohave access to this tiny part of you â¦â
âYes,â she said, crossing her arms. âBarriers.Caution tape. Iâm doing you a favor.â
363/593
âDonât,â he said. âI can handle it.â He put histhumb between her eyebrows and tried to smoothout the frown. âThis whole stupid fight was aboutkeeping secrets.â
âKeeping secrets about your demonic ex-girl-friend. I donât have any demonic ex-anythings.â
âDoes Richie hate your brothers and sister,too?â
âStop saying his name.â She was whispering.âIâm sorry.â Park whispered back.âHe hates everybody, I think.ââNot your mom.ââEspecially her.ââIs he mean to her?âEleanor rolled her eyes and wiped her cheek
with her sweater sleeve. âUh. Yeah.âPark took her hands again. âWhy doesnât she
leave?âShe shook her head. âI donât think she can â¦
I donât think thereâs enough of her left.ââIs she scared of him?â he asked.âYeah â¦â
364/593
âAre you scared of him?ââMe?ââI know youâre scared of getting kicked out,
but are you scared of him?ââNo.â She lifted up her chin. âNo ⦠I just
have to lay low, you know? Like as long as I stayout of his way, Iâm fine. I just have to beinvisible.â
Park smiled.âWhat?â she asked.âYou. Invisible.âShe smiled. He let go of her hands and held
her face. Her cheeks were cold, and her eyeswere fathomless in the dark.
She was all he could see.
Eventually it was too cold to stay out there. Eventhe insides of their mouths were freezing.
Eleanor
Richie said Eleanor had to come out of her roomfor Christmas dinner. Fine. She really was getting
365/593
a cold, so at least it didnât seem like sheâd beenfaking it all day.
Dinner was awesome. Her mom could reallycook when she had actual food to work with. (So-mething other than legumes.)
They had turkey with stuffing, and mashedpotatoes swimming with dill and butter. Fordessert there was rice pudding and pepper cook-ies, which her mom only ever made onChristmas.
At least that had been the rule back when hermom used to make all kinds of cookies, all yearlong. The little kids didnât know what they weremissing now. When Eleanor and Ben were little,their mom baked constantly. There were alwaysfresh cookies in the kitchen when Eleanor gothome from school. And real breakfast everymorning ⦠Eggs and bacon, or pancakes andsausage, or oatmeal with cream and brown sugar.
Eleanor used to think that that was why shewas so fat. But look at her now, she was starvingall the time, and she was still enormous.
366/593
They all tore into Christmas dinner like it wastheir last meal, which it practically was, at leastfor a while. Ben ate both of the turkey legs, andMouse ate an entire plate of mashed potatoes.
Richie had been drinking all day again, so hewas all kinds of festive at dinner â laughing toomuch and too loud. But you couldnât enjoy thefact that he was in a good mood, because it wasthe kind of good mood that was just on the edgeof a bad one. They were all waiting for him tocross over â¦
Which he did, as soon as he realized therewas no pumpkin pie.
âWhat the fuck is this?â he said, flicking hisspoon in the ris ala mande.
âItâs rice pudding,â Ben said, stupid withturkey.
âI know itâs pudding,â Richie said. âWhereâsthe pumpkin pie, Sabrina?â he shouted into thekitchen. âI told you to make a real Christmas din-ner. I gave you money for a real Christmasdinner.â
367/593
Her mother stood in the doorway to the kit-chen. She still hadnât sat down to eat. âItâs â¦â
Itâs a traditional Danish Christmas dessert,Eleanor thought. My grandmother made it, andher grandmother made it, and itâs better thanpumpkin pie. Itâs special.
âItâs ⦠just that I forgot to buy pumpkin,â hermother said.
âHow could you forget the fucking pumpkinon Christmas,â Richie said, hurling the stainless-steel bowl of rice pudding. It hit the wall near hermother and sprayed weepy chunks everywhere.
Everyone but Richie stayed still.He stood up unsteadily from his chair. âIâm
going to go buy some pumpkin pie ⦠so thisfamily can have a real fucking Christmas dinner.â
He walked to the back door.As soon as they heard his truck tear out,
Eleanorâs mom picked up the bowl with whatwas left of the rice pudding, then skimmed thetop off the pile of pudding on the floor.
âWho wants cherry sauce?â she said.
368/593
They all did.Eleanor cleaned up the rest of the pudding,
and Ben turned on the TV. They watched TheGrinch and Frosty the Snowman, and A Christ-mas Carol.
Their mom even sat down to watch withthem.
Eleanor couldnât help but think that if theGhost of Christmas Past showed up, heâd be dis-gusted with their whole situation. But Eleanorfelt full and happy when she fell asleep.
369/593
CHAPTER 34
Eleanor
Parkâs mom didnât seem surprised to see Eleanorthe next day. He must have warned them she wascoming.
âEleanor,â his mom said extra nicely, âMerryChristmas, come in.â
When Eleanor walked into the living room,Park had just gotten out of the shower, which wasembarrassing for some reason. His hair was wetand his T-shirt was kind of sticking to him. Hewas really happy to see her. That was obvious.(And nice.)
She didnât know what to do with his present,so when he walked over to her, she shoved it athim. He smiled, surprised. âThis is for me?â
âNo,â she said, âitâs â¦â She couldnât think ofanything funny to say. âYeah, itâs for you.â
âYou didnât have to get me anything.ââI didnât. Really.ââCan I open it?âShe still couldnât think of anything funny, so
she nodded. At least his family was in the kit-chen, so nobody was watching them.
The present was wrapped in stationery.Eleanorâs favorite stationery, watercolor paint-ings of fairies and flowers.
Park peeled off the paper carefully andlooked at the book. It was The Catcher in theRye. A really old edition. Eleanor had decided toleave the dust jacket on because it was neat-look-ing, even though it still had a thrift-shop pricescrawled on the front with grease pencil.
âI know itâs pretentious,â she said. âI was go-ing to give you Watership Down, but thatâs aboutrabbits, and not everybody wants to read aboutrabbits â¦â
371/593
He looked at the book, smiling. For a terriblesecond, she thought he was going to open thefront cover. And she really didnât want him toread what sheâd written. (Not while she wasstanding right there.)
âIs this your book?â he asked.âYeah, but Iâve already read it.ââThank you,â he said, grinning at her. When
he was really happy, his eyes disappeared into hischeeks. âThank you.â
âYouâre welcome,â she said, looking down.âJust donât kill John Lennon or anything.â
âCome here,â he said, pulling on the front ofher jacket.
She followed him to his room but stopped atthe door like there was an invisible fence. Parkset the book on his bed, then grabbed two smallboxes off a shelf. They were both wrapped inChristmas paper with big red bows.
He came and stood in the doorway with her;she leaned back against the jamb.
372/593
âThis one is from my mom,â he said, holdingup a box. âItâs perfume. Please donât wear it.â Hiseyes flicked down for a second, then back up ather. âThis one is from me.â
âYou didnât have to get me a present,â shesaid.
âDonât be stupid.âWhen she didnât take the present, he took her
hand and pressed the box into it.âI tried to think of something that nobody
would notice but you,â he said, pushing his bangsoff his face. âThat you wouldnât have to explainto your mom ⦠Like, I was going to buy you areally nice pen, but then â¦â
He was watching her open it, which made hernervous. She accidentally tore the wrapping pa-per. He took the paper from her, and she openeda small gray box.
There was a necklace inside. A thin silverchain with a small pendant, a silver pansy.
âIâll understand if you canât take it,â Parksaid.
373/593
She shouldnât take it, but she wanted it.
Park
Dumb. He should have gotten the pen. Jewelrywas so public ⦠and personal, which is why heâdbought it. He couldnât buy Eleanor a pen. Or abookmark. He didnât have bookmark-like feel-ings for her.
Park had used most of his car stereo money tobuy the necklace. Heâd found it at the jewelrystore in the mall where people try on engagementrings.
âI kept the receipt,â he said.âNo,â Eleanor said, looking up at him. She
looked anxious, but he wasnât sure what kind.âNo. Itâs beautiful,â she said, âthank you.â
âWill you wear it?â he asked.She nodded.He ran his hand through his hair and held
onto the back of his neck, trying to rein himselfin. âNow?â
374/593
Eleanor looked at him for a second, then nod-ded again. He took the necklace out of the boxand carefully fastened it around her neck. Justlike heâd imagined himself doing when he boughtit. That might even be why he bought it â so heâdhave this moment, with his hands warm on theback of her neck, under her hair. He ran his fin-gertips along the chain and settled the pendant onher throat.
She shivered.Park wanted to pull on the chain, to pull it in-
to his chest and anchor her there.He pulled his hands away self-consciously
and leaned back against the doorjamb.
Eleanor
They were sitting in the kitchen, playing cards.Speed. Sheâd taught Park how to play, and shecould always beat him for the first few rounds.But after that, sheâd get sloppy. (Maisie alwaysstarted winning after a few rounds, too.)
375/593
Playing cards in Parkâs kitchen, even if hismom was in there, was better than just sitting inthe living room, thinking about all the thingstheyâd be doing if they were alone.
His mom asked how her Christmas was, andEleanor said it was nice. âWhat do you have forholiday dinner?â his mom asked. âTurkey orham?â
âTurkey,â Eleanor said, âwith dill potatoes â¦My momâs Danish.â
Park stopped playing to look at her. Shepopped her eyes at him. âWhat, Iâm Danish, shutup,â she would have said if his mom hadnât beenthere.
âThatâs where you get beautiful red hair,â hismom said knowingly.
Park smiled at Eleanor. She rolled her eyes.When his mom left to run something over to
his grandparents, Park kicked her under the table.He wasnât wearing shoes.
âI didnât know you were Danish,â he said.
376/593
âIs this the kind of scintillating conversationweâre going to have now that we donât have anysecrets?â
âYes. Is your mom Danish?ââYes,â she said.âWhatâs your dad?ââAn ass.âHe frowned.âWhat? You wanted honest and intimate.
Thatâs way more honest than âScottish.âââScottish,â Park said, and smiled.Eleanor had been thinking about this new ar-
rangement he wanted. This being totally openand honest with each other. She didnât think shecould start telling Park the whole, ugly truthovernight.
What if he was wrong? What if he couldnâthandle it?
What if Park realized that all the things hethought were so mysterious and intriguing abouther were actually just ⦠bleak?
377/593
When he asked about her Christmas, Eleanortold him about her momâs cookies and themovies, and how Mouse thought The Grinch wasabout âall the Hoots down in Hootville.â
She half expected him to say, âYeah, but nowtell me all the terrible parts â¦â Instead helaughed.
âDo you think your mom would be okay withme,â he asked, âyou know, if it wasnât for yourstepdad?â
âI donât know â¦â Eleanor said. She realizedthat she was holding on to the silver pansy.
Eleanor spent the rest of Christmas vacation atParkâs house. His mom didnât seem to mind, andhis dad was always inviting her to stay for dinner.
Eleanorâs mom thought she was spending allthat time with Tina. Once sheâd said, âI hopeyouâre not overstaying your welcome over there,Eleanor.â And once sheâd said, âTina could comeover here sometimes, too, you know,â which theyboth knew was a joke.
378/593
Nobody brought friends into their house. Notthe little kids. Not even Richie. And her momdidnât have friends anymore.
She used to.When Eleanorâs parents were still together,
there were always people around. There were al-ways parties. Men with long hair. Women in longdresses. Glasses of red wine everywhere.
And even after her dad left, there were stillwomen. Single moms who brought over theirkids, plus all the ingredients for banana daiquiris.Theyâd sit up late talking in hushed voices abouttheir ex-husbands and speculating about newboyfriends, while the kids played Trouble andSorry in the next room.
Richie had started as one of those stories. Itwent like this:
Her mom used to walk to the grocery storeearly in the morning while the kids were stillasleep. They didnât have a car back then either.(Her mom hadnât had a car of her own since highschool.) Well, Richie would see her mom out
379/593
walking every morning on his drive to work. Oneday he stopped and asked for her number. Hesaid she was the prettiest woman heâd ever seen.
When Eleanor first heard about Richie, shewas leaning against their old couch, reading aLife magazine, and drinking a virgin banana dai-quiri. She wasnât exactly eavesdropping â all hermomâs friends liked having Eleanor around.They liked that she watched their kids withoutcomplaining, they said she was wise beyond heryears. If Eleanor was quiet, they sort of forgotshe was in the room. And if they drank too much,they didnât care.
âNever trust a man, Eleanor!â theyâd allshouted at her, at one point or another.
âEspecially if he hates to dance!âBut when her mom told them that Richie said
she was as pretty as a spring day, theyâd allsighed and asked her to tell them more.
Of course he said sheâs the prettiest womanheâs ever seen, Eleanor thought. She undoubtedlyis.
380/593
Eleanor was twelve, and she couldnât imaginea guy fucking her mom over worse than her dadhad.
She didnât know there were things worse thanselfish.
Anyway. She always tried to leave Parkâs housebefore dinner â just in case her mom was rightabout wearing out her welcome â and because, ifEleanor left early, there was a better chance thatsheâd beat Richie home.
Hanging out with Park every day had reallymessed up her bath-taking routine. (A fact shewas never ever going to tell him, no matter howsharey-carey they got.)
The only safe time to take a bath in her housewas right after school. If Eleanor went over toParkâs house right after school, she had to hopethat Richie would still be at the Broken Railwhen she got home that night. And then she hadto take a really fast bath because the back doorwas right across from the bathroom, and it couldopen at any time.
381/593
She could tell that all this sneaky bath-takingwas making her mom nervous, but it wasnât ex-actly Eleanorâs fault. Sheâd considered taking ashower in the locker room at school, but thatmight even be more dangerous: Tina et al.
The other day at lunch, Tina had a made bigpoint of walking by Eleanorâs table and mouthingthe C-word. The c-u-n-t word. (Richie didnâteven use that word, which implied an unimagin-able degree of filth.)
âWhat is her problem?â DeNice asked.Rhetorically.
âShe thinks sheâs all that,â Beebi said.âShe ainât all that,â DeNice said. âWalking
around here looking like a little boy in aminiskirt.â
Beebi giggled.âThat hair is just wrong,â DeNice said, still
looking at Tina. âShe needs to wake up a littleearlier and try to decide whether she wants tolook like Farrah Fawcett or Rick James.â
Beebi and Eleanor both cracked up.
382/593
âI mean, pick one, girl,â DeNice said, milkingit. âPick. One.â
âOh, girl!â Beebi said, slapping Eleanorâs leg.âThereâs your man.â They all looked out thecafeteriaâs glass wall. Park was walking by witha few other guys. He was wearing jeans and a T-shirt that said âMinor Threat.â He looked into thecafeteria and smiled when he saw Eleanor. Beebigiggled.
âHe is cute,â DeNice said. Like it wassomething certifiable.
âI know,â Eleanor said. âI want to eat hisface.â
They all three giggled until DeNice calledthem back to order.
Park
âSo,â Cal said.Park was still smiling. Even though they were
long past the cafeteria.âYou and Eleanor, huh?â
383/593
âUh ⦠yeah,â Park said.âYeah,â Cal said, nodding. âEverybody
knows. I mean, Iâve known forever. I could tellby the way you stare at her in English ⦠I wasjust waiting for you to tell me.â
âOh,â Park said, looking up at Cal. âSorry.Iâm going out with Eleanor.â
âWhy didnât you tell me?ââI figured you knew.ââI did know,â Cal said. âBut, you know, weâre
friends. Weâre supposed to talk about thesethings.â
âI didnât think youâd get it â¦ââI donât get it. No offense. Eleanor still scares
the crap out of me. But if youâre getting it â youknow, getting it â I want to know about it. I wantthe whole freaking report.â
âThis, actually,â Park said. âThis is why Ididnât tell you.â
384/593
CHAPTER 35
Eleanor
Parkâs mom asked him to set the table. That wasEleanorâs cue to leave. The sun had almost set.She rushed down the steps before Park could stopher ⦠and almost ran into his dad standing in thedriveway.
âHey, Eleanor,â he said, startling her. He wasmessing around with something in the back of histruck.
âHey,â she said, rushing past him. He reallydid look an awful lot like Magnum P.I. It wasnâtsomething you got used to.
âHey, wait, come here,â he said.She felt something go slightly wrong in her
stomach. She stopped and stepped toward him,but only a little.
âLook,â he said, âIâm getting tired of askingyou to stay for dinner.â
âOkay â¦â she said.âWhat I mean is, I want you to feel like you
have a standing invitation. Youâre just ⦠wel-come, okay?â He seemed uncomfortable, and itwas making her uncomfortable. Way more un-comfortable than she usually felt around him.
âOkay â¦â she said.âLook, Eleanor ⦠I know your stepdad.âThis could go a million different ways, she
thought. All of them awful.Parkâs dad kept talking, one hand on his
truck, the other on the back of his neck, like hewas in pain. âWe grew up together. Iâm olderthan Richie, but this is a small neighborhood, andIâve put in my time at the Rail â¦â
The sun was too far gone to see his face.Eleanor still wasnât sure what he was getting at.
âI know that your stepdad isnât an easy manto be around,â Parkâs dad said finally, steppingtoward her. âAnd Iâm just saying, you know, that
386/593
if itâs easier to be over here, then you should justbe here. That would make Mindy and I feel a lotbetter, okay?â
âOkay,â she said.âSo this is the last time Iâm going to ask you
to stay for dinner.âEleanor smiled, and he smiled back, and for a
second he looked a lot more like Park than TomSelleck.
Park
Eleanor on the couch, holding his hand. Acrossfrom him at the kitchen table with her homeworkâ¦
Helping him carry in groceries for his grand-mother. Politely eating everything his mom madefor dinner, even if it was something completelydisgusting like liver and onions â¦
They were always together, and it still wasnâtenough.
387/593
He still hadnât found a way to put his arms allthe way around her. And he still didnât haveenough opportunities to kiss her. She wouldnât goto his room with him â¦
âWe can listen to music,â heâd say.âYour mom â¦ââDoesnât care. Weâll leave the door open.ââWhere will we sit?ââOn my bed.ââGod. No.ââOn the floor.ââI donât want her to think Iâm slutty.âHe wasnât sure his mother even thought of
Eleanor as a girl.She liked Eleanor though. More than she used
to. Just the other day, his mom had said thatEleanor had excellent manners.
âSheâs very quiet,â his mom said, like thatwas a good thing.
âSheâs just nervous,â Park said.âWhy nervous?ââI donât know,â Park said. âShe just is.â
388/593
He could tell that his mom still hated Elean-orâs clothes. She was always looking her up anddown and shaking her head when she thoughtEleanor wasnât looking.
Eleanor was unfailingly polite with his mom.She even tried to make small talk. One Saturdaynight after dinner, Parkâs mom was sorting herAvon shipment on the dining room table whilePark and Eleanor played cards. âHow long haveyou been a beautician?â Eleanor asked, lookingover at all the bottles.
His mom loved that word.âSince Josh start school. I get my GED, I go
to beauty school, get license, get permit â¦ââWow,â Eleanor said.âI always do hair,â his mom said, âeven be-
fore.â She opened a pink bottle of lotion andsmelled it. âLittle girl ⦠cut dollâs hair, paint onmakeup.â
âThat sounds like my sister,â Eleanor said. âIcould never do any of that.â
389/593
âNot so hard â¦â his mom said, looking up ather. His momâs eyes lit up. âHey, I have goodidea,â she said. âI do your hair. We havemakeover night.â
Eleanorâs mouth dropped open. She wasprobably picturing herself with feathered hair andfake eyelashes.
âOh, no â¦â she said. âI couldnât â¦ââYes,â his mom said, âso much fun!ââMom, no,â Park said, âEleanor doesnât want
a makeover ⦠She doesnât need a makeover,â headded, as soon as he thought of it.
âNot big makeover,â his mom said. She wasalready reaching for Eleanorâs hair. âNo cutting.Nothing we canât wash off.â
Park looked at Eleanor, pleading. Hopefully,sheâd know that he was pleading because itwould make his mom happy, not because hethought there was anything wrong with her.
âNo cutting?â Eleanor said.His mom was fingering a curl. âBetter light in
the garage,â she said, âcome on.â
390/593
Eleanor
Parkâs mom put Eleanor in the shampoo chairand snapped her fingers at Park. To Eleanorâshorror â to her ongoing horror â Park came overand started filling the sink with water. He took apink towel down from a big stack, and expertlyVelcroed it around Eleanorâs neck, carefully lift-ing out her hair.
âIâm sorry,â he whispered. âDo you want meto leave?â
âNo,â she mouthed, grabbing his shirt. Yes,she thought. She was already starting to dissolvewith embarrassment. She couldnât feel the tips ofher fingers.
But if Park left, thereâd be no one to stop hismom if she decided to give Eleanor giant, claw-shaped bangs or a spiral perm. Or both.
Eleanor wouldnât try to stop her, no matterwhat; she was a guest in this garage. Sheâd eatenthis womanâs food and manhandled her son â shewas in no position to argue.
391/593
Parkâs mom pushed him aside and laid Elean-orâs head firmly back into the sink. âWhat kind ofshampoo you use?â
âI donât know,â Eleanor said.âHow you not know?â his mom asked, feeling
her hair. âFeels too dry. Curly hair is dry, youknow?â
Eleanor shook her head.âHmmm â¦â Parkâs mom said. She tipped
Eleanorâs head back into the water and told Parkto go stick a hot-oil pack in the microwave.
It was really, really strange having Parkâsmom wash her hair. She was practically standingin Eleanorâs lap; her angel necklace hung rightover Eleanorâs mouth. Plus, the whole processtickled like crazy. Eleanor didnât know whetherPark was watching. She hoped not.
A few minutes later, her hair was hot-oiledand wrapped in a towel so tight it hurt her fore-head. Park was sitting across from her, trying tosmile, but looking almost as uncomfortable asshe felt.
392/593
His mom was going through box after box ofAvon samples. âI know itâs here somewhere,â shesaid. âCinnamon, cinnamon, cinnamon ⦠A-ha!â
She wheeled her chair over to Eleanor.âOkay. Close eyes.â
Eleanor stared at her. She was holding up alittle brown pencil.
âClose eyes,â she said again.âWhy?â Eleanor said.âDonât worry. This wash off.ââBut I donât wear makeup.ââWhy not?âMaybe Eleanor should say that she wasnât al-
lowed to. That would sound nicer than âbecausemakeup is a lie.â
âI donât know,â Eleanor said, âitâs just notme.â
âYes, you,â his mom said, looking at the pen-cil. âVery good color for you. Cinnamon.â
âIs that lipstick?ââNo, eyeliner.âEleanor especially didnât wear eyeliner.
393/593
âWhat does it do?ââItâs makeup,â his mom said, exasperated. âIt
makes you pretty.âEleanor felt like she had something in her
eye. Like fire.âMom â¦â Park said.âHere,â his mom said. âIâll show you.â She
turned to Park, and before either of them realizedwhat she was planning, she had her thumb at thecorner of his eye.
âCinnamon too light,â she muttered. Shepicked up a different pencil. âOnyx.â
âMom â¦â Park said painfully, but he didnâtmove.
His mom sat so that Eleanor could see, thendeftly drew a line along Parkâs eyelashes.âOpen.â He did. âNice ⦠close.â She did the othereye, too. Then she added another line under hiseye and licked her thumb to wipe away asmudge. âThere, nice.â
âSee?â she said, sitting back so that Eleanorcould see. âEasy. Pretty.â
394/593
Park didnât look pretty. He looked dangerous.Like Ming the Merciless. Or a member of DuranDuran.
âYou look like Robert Smith,â Eleanor said.But ⦠yeah, she thought, prettier.
He looked down. Eleanor couldnât look away.His mom swooped in between them. âOkay,
now close eyes,â she said to Eleanor. âOpen. Nice⦠Close again â¦â It felt exactly like havingsomeone draw on your eye with a pencil. Then itwas over, and Parkâs mom was rubbingsomething cold on Eleanorâs cheeks.
âThis very easy routine,â his mom said.âFoundation, powder, eyeliner, eye shadow, mas-cara, lip liner, lipstick, blush. Eight steps, takeyou fifteen minutes tops.â
Parkâs mom was very businesslike, likesomeone with a cooking show on PBS. Prettysoon she was unwrapping Eleanorâs hair andstanding behind her.
Eleanor wanted to look at Park again, nowthat she could, but she didnât want him looking
395/593
back. Her face felt so heavy and sticky, she prob-ably looked like one of the Designing Women.
Park scooted his chair closer to hers and star-ted bouncing his fist on her knee. It took Eleanora second to realize he was challenging her to agame of Rock, Paper, Scissors.
She played along. God. Any excuse to touchhim. Any excuse not to look at him directly. Heâdrubbed his eyes, so he didnât look painted any-more â but he still looked like something Eleanordidnât have words for.
âThatâs how Park keep little kids busy duringhaircuts,â his mom said. âYou must look scared,Eleanor. Donât worry. I promise no cutting.â
Eleanor and Park both made scissors.His mom rubbed half a can of mousse into
her hair, then blew it dry with a diffuser (whichEleanor had never heard of before but was appar-ently very, very important).
According to Parkâs mom, everything Elean-or was doing with her hair â washing it with
396/593
whatever, brushing it, tying in beads and silkflowers â was dead wrong.
She should be diffusing and scrunching and,if possible, sleeping on a satin pillowcase.
âI think you look really good with bangs,â hismom said. âMaybe next time, we try bangs.â
There will never be a next time, Eleanorpromised herself and God.
âOkay, all done.â Parkâs mom was all smiles.âLook so pretty ⦠Ready to see?â She turnedEleanor around to the mirror. âTa-daa!â
Eleanor looked at her own lap.âHave to look, Eleanor. Look, mirror, so
pretty.âEleanor couldnât. She could feel them both
watching her. She wanted to disappear, to dropthrough a trap door. This whole thing was a badidea. A terrible idea. She was going to cry, shewas going to make a scene. Parkâs mom was go-ing to go back to hating her.
âHey, Mindy.â Parkâs dad opened the doorand leaned into the garage. âPhone call. Oh, hey,
397/593
look at you, Eleanor, you look like a Solid Golddancer.â
âSee?â his mom said, âI told you â pretty.Donât look in mirror until I come back. Lookingin mirror best part.â
She hurried into the house, and Eleanor hidher face in her hands, trying not to mess anythingup. She felt Parkâs hands on her wrists.
âIâm sorry,â he said. âI guess I knew youâdhate this, but I didnât think youâd hate it thismuch.â
âItâs just so embarrassing.ââWhy?ââBecause ⦠youâre all looking at me.ââIâm always looking at you,â he said.âI know, I wish youâd stop.ââSheâs just trying to get to know you. This is
her thing.ââDo I look like a Solid Gold dancer?ââNo â¦ââOh my God,â she said, âI do.ââNo, you look ⦠just look.â
398/593
âI donât want to.ââLook now,â he said, âbefore my mom gets
back.ââOnly if you close your eyes.ââOkay, theyâre closed.âEleanor uncovered her face and looked in the
mirror. It wasnât as embarrassing as she thoughtâ because it was like looking at a different per-son. Someone with cheekbones and giant eyesand really wet lips. Her hair was still curly, curli-er than ever, but calmer somehow. Lessderanged.
Eleanor hated it, she hated all of it.âCan I open my eyes?â Park asked.âNo.ââAre you crying?ââNo.â Of course she was. She was going to
ruin her fake face, and Parkâs mom was going togo back to hating her.
Park opened his eyes and sat in front ofEleanor on the vanity. âIs it so bad?â he asked.
âItâs not me.â
399/593
âOf course itâs you.ââI just, I look like Iâm in costume. Like Iâm
trying to be something that Iâm not.âLike she was trying to be pretty and popular.
It was the trying part that was so disgusting.âI think your hair looks really nice,â Park
said.âItâs not my hair.ââIt is â¦ââI donât want your mom to see me like this. I
donât want to hurt her feelings.ââKiss me.ââWhat?âHe kissed her. Eleanor felt her shoulders fall
and her stomach untwist. Then it started twistingin the other direction. She pulled away.
âAre you kissing me because I look likesomeone else?â
âYou donât look like someone else. Plus,thatâs crazy.â
âDo you like me better like this?â she asked.âBecause Iâm never going to look like this again.â
400/593
âI like you the same ⦠I kind of miss yourfreckles.â He rubbed her cheeks with his sleeve.âThere,â he said.
âYou look like a different person,â she said,âand youâre just wearing eyeliner.â
âDo you like me better?âShe rolled her eyes, but she felt the heat in
her neck. âYou look different. You lookunsettling.â
âYou look like you,â he said. âYou with thevolume turned up.â
She looked in the mirror again.âThe thing is,â Park said. âIâm pretty sure my
mom was holding back. I think she thinks this isthe natural look.â
Eleanor laughed. The door to the houseopened.
âAwww, I told you guys to wait,â his momsaid. âWere you surprised?â
Eleanor nodded.âDid you cry? Oh, I miss it!ââSorry if I messed it up,â Eleanor said.
401/593
âNo mess,â his mom said, âwaterproof mas-cara and stay-put foundation.â
âThank you,â Eleanor said carefully. âI couldhardly believe the difference.â
âIâll make you a kit,â his mom said. âThese allcolors I never use anyway. Here, sit down, Park.I trim your hair while we here. Looking shaggyâ¦â
Eleanor sat in front of him and played Rock,Paper, Scissors on his knee.
Park
She looked like a different person, and Parkdidnât know if he liked it better. Or at all.
He couldnât figure out why it upset her somuch. Sometimes, it seemed like she was tryingto hide everything that was pretty about her. Likeshe wanted to look ugly.
That was something his mother would say.Which is why he hadnât said it to Eleanor. (Didthat count as holding back?)
402/593
He got why Eleanor tried so hard to look dif-ferent. Sort of. It was because she was different âbecause she wasnât afraid to be. (Or maybe shewas just more afraid of being like everyone else.)
There was something really exciting aboutthat. He liked being near that, that kind of braveand crazy.
âUnsettling, how?â heâd wanted to ask her.The next morning, Park took the onyx eye-
liner into the bathroom and put it on. He wasmessier than his mom, but he thought that mightlook better. More masculine.
He looked in the mirror. âThis really makeyour eyes pop,â his mom always told her custom-ers, and it was true. The eyeliner did make hiseyes pop. It also made him look even less white.
Then Park did his hair like he usually did âflared up in the middle, all messy and tall, like itwas reaching for something. Usually, as soon ashe did that, Park combed his hair out and downagain.
Today he left it wild.
403/593
His dad flipped at breakfast. Flipped. Park triedto sneak out without seeing him, but his momwas non-negotiable about breakfast. Park hunghis head over the cereal bowl.
âWhatâs wrong with your hair?â his dadasked.
âNothing.ââWait a minute, look at me ⦠I said look at
me.âPark lifted his head, but looked away.âWhat the fuck, Park?ââJamie!â his mother said.âLook at him, Mindy, heâs wearing makeup!
Are you fucking kidding me, Park?ââNo excuse to cuss,â his mom said. She
looked nervously at Park, like maybe this was herfault. Maybe it was. Maybe she shouldnât havetried out lipstick samples on him when he was inkindergarten. Not that he wanted to wear lipstickâ¦
Probably.
404/593
âLike hell it isnât,â his dad roared. âGo washyour face, Park.â
Park stayed where he was.âGo wash your face. Park.âPark took a bite of cereal.âJamie â¦â his mom said.âNo, Mindy. No. I let these boys do pretty
much anything they damn well please. But, no.Park is not leaving this house looking like a girl.â
âPlenty of guys wear makeup,â Park said.âWhat? What are you even talking about?ââDavid Bowie,â Park said. âMarc Bolan.ââIâm not listening to this. Wash your face.ââWhy?â Park pushed his fists into the table.âBecause I said so. Because you look like a
girl.ââSo what else is new?â Park shoved his cereal
bowl away.âWhat did you say?ââI said, what else is new? Isnât that what you
think?â
405/593
Park felt tears on his cheeks, but he didnâtwant to touch his eyes.
âGo to school, Park,â his mom said softly.âYou miss your bus.â
âMindy â¦â his dad said, just barely restrain-ing himself, âtheyâll tear him apart.â
âYou tell me Park all grown up now, almostman, make own decisions. So let him make owndecisions. Let him go.â
His dad didnât say anything; heâd never raisehis voice to Parkâs mom. Park saw his opportun-ity and left.
He went to his own bus stop, not Eleanorâs. Hewanted to deal with Steve before he saw her. IfSteve was going to beat the shit out of him forthis, Park would prefer that Eleanor not be in theaudience.
But Steve hardly mentioned it.âHey, Park, what the fuck, man, are you
wearing makeup?ââYeah,â Park said, holding onto his backpack.
406/593
Everyone around Steve tittered, waiting tosee what would happen next.
âYou kind of look like Ozzy, man,â Stevesaid. âYou look ready to bite the head off a fuck-ing bat.â
Everybody laughed. Steve bared his teeth atTina and growled, and then it was over.
When Eleanor got on the bus, she was in agood mood. âYouâre here! I thought maybe youwere sick when you werenât at my corner.â Helooked up at her. She looked surprised, then satdown quietly and looked at her hands.
âDo I look like one of the Solid Gold dan-cers?â he asked finally, when he couldnât takeany more quiet.
âNo,â she said, sidelong glancing, âyou lookâ¦â
âUnsettling?â he asked.She laughed and nodded.âUnsettling, how?â he asked her.
She kissed him with tongue. On the bus.
407/593
CHAPTER 36
Park
Park told Eleanor not to come over after school.He figured he was grounded. He washed his faceas soon as he got home and sent himself to hisroom.
His mom came in to check on him.âAm I grounded?â he asked.âI donât know,â she said. âDid you have a
good day at school?âMeaning, did anyone try to flush his face
down the toilet?âIt was fine,â he said.A couple of kids had called Park names in the
halls, but it didnât hurt like he thought it might.Lots of other people said he looked cool.
His mom sat on his bed. She looked likesheâd had a long day. You could see her lipliner.
She stared at a jumble of Star Wars actionfigures piled up on the shelf over his bed. Hehadnât touched them for years.
âPark,â she said, âdo you ⦠want to look likegirl? Is that what this about? Eleanor dress likeboy. You look like girl?â
âNo â¦â Park said. âI just like it. I like theway it feels.â
âLike girl?ââNo,â he said. âLike myself.ââYour dad â¦ââI donât want to talk about him.âHis mother sat for another minute, then left.Park stayed in his room until Josh came to get
him for dinner. His dad didnât look up when Parksat down.
âWhereâs Eleanor?â his dad asked.âI thought I was grounded.ââYouâre not grounded,â his dad said, concen-
trating on his meat loaf.
409/593
Park looked around the table. Only Joshwould look back at him. âAre you going to talk tome about this morning?â Park asked.
His dad took another bite, chewed it care-fully, then swallowed. âNo, Park, at the moment Icanât think of a single thing Iâd like to say toyou.â
410/593
CHAPTER 37
Eleanor
Park was right. They were never alone.She thought about sneaking out again, but the
risk was incomprehensible, and it was so effingcold out sheâd probably lose an ear to frostbite.Which her mom would definitely notice.
Sheâd already noticed the mascara. (Eventhough it was brown and said âSubtle, NaturalLookâ right on the package.)
âTina gave it to me,â Eleanor said. âHermomâs an Avon lady.â
If she just changed Parkâs name to âTinaâevery time she lied, it only felt like one big lie in-stead of a million small ones.
It was kind of funny to think about hangingout at Tinaâs house every day, doing each otherâsnails, trying on lip gloss â¦
It would be awful if her mom actually metTina somewhere, but that didnât seem likely â hermom never talked to anybody in the neighbor-hood. If you werenât born in the Flats (if yourfamily didnât go back ten generations, if yourparents didnât have the same great-great-grand-parents), you were an outsider.
Park always said that was why people lefthim alone, even though he was weird and Asian.Because his family had owned their land backwhen the neighborhood was still cornfields.
Park. Eleanor blushed whenever she thoughtabout him. Sheâd probably always done that, butnow it was worse. Because he was cute and coolbefore, but lately he seemed so much more ofboth.
Even DeNice and Beebi thought so.âHe looks like a rock star,â DeNice said.âHe looks like El DeBarge,â Beebi agreed.
412/593
He looked like himself, Eleanor thought, butbolder. Like Park with the volume turned way up.
Park
They were never alone.They tried to make the walk from the bus to
Parkâs house last forever, and sometimes, theyâdhang out on his front steps a while ⦠until hismom opened the door and told them to come infrom the cold.
Maybe it would be better this summer. Theycould go outside. Maybe they could take walks.Maybe heâd get his driverâs license after all â¦
No. His dad hadnât even spoken to him sincethe day they fought.
âWhatâs up with your dad?â Eleanor askedhim. She was standing one step below him on hisfront stoop.
âHeâs mad at me.ââFor what?ââFor not being like him.â
413/593
Eleanor looked dubious. âHas he been mad atyou for the last sixteen years?â
âBasically.ââBut it always seemed like you got along â¦â
she said.âNo,â Park said, ânever. I mean, we were kind
of getting along for a while, because I finally gotin a fight, and because he thought my mom wasbeing too hard on you.â
âI knew she didnât like me!â Eleanor pokedParkâs arm.
âWell, now she likes you,â he said, âso nowmy dad is back to not liking me.â
âYour dad loves you,â she said. It seemed toreally matter to her.
Park shook his head. âOnly because he has to.Heâs disappointed in me.â
Eleanor laid her hand on his chest, and hismom opened the door.
âCome in, come in,â she said. âToo cold.â
Eleanor
414/593
âYour hair looks nice, Eleanor,â Parkâs mom said.âThank you.âEleanor wasnât diffusing, but she was using
the conditioner Parkâs mom had given her. Andsheâd actually found a satin pillowcase in thestack of towels and stuff in her bedroom closet,which was practically a sign from God that Hewanted Eleanor to take better care of her hair.
Parkâs mom really did seem to like her betternow. Eleanor hadnât consented to another full-onmakeover, but Parkâs mom was always tryingnew eyeshadows on her or messing with her hairwhile she sat at the kitchen table with Park.
âI should have had girl,â his mom said.I should have had a family like this, Eleanor
thought. And it only sometimes made her feellike a traitor to think so.
415/593
CHAPTER 38
Eleanor
Wednesday nights were the worst.Park had taekwando, so Eleanor went straight
home after school, took a bath, then tried to hidein her room all night, reading.
It was way too cold to play outside, so thelittle kids were crawling up the walls. WhenRichie came home, there was no place for any-body to hide.
Ben was so afraid that Richie would send himto the basement early that he was sitting in thebedroom closet, playing with his cars.
When Richie turned on Mike Hammer theirmom shooed Maisie into the bedroom, too, eventhough Richie said she could stay.
Maisie paced the room, bored and irritable.She walked over to the bunk bed.
âCan I come up?ââNo.ââPlease â¦âTheir beds were junior-sized, smaller than a
twin, just barely big enough for Eleanor. AndMaisie wasnât one of those stringy, weightlessnine-year-olds â¦
âFine,â Eleanor groaned.She scooted over carefully, like she was on
thin ice, and pushed her grapefruit box behindher into the corner.
Maisie climbed up and sat on Eleanorâs pil-low. âWhatâre you reading?â
âWatership Down.âMaisie wasnât paying attention. She folded
her arms and leaned toward Eleanor. âWe knowyou have a boyfriend,â she whispered.
Eleanorâs heart stopped. âI donât have a boy-friend,â she said blankly â and immediately.
âWe already know,â Maisie said.
417/593
Eleanor looked over at Ben, sitting in thecloset. He stared at her without giving up a thing.Thanks to Richie, they were all experts in theblank-face department. They should find somefamily poker tournament â¦
âBobbie told us,â Maisie said. âHer big sistergoes with Josh Sheridan, and Josh says youâre hisbrotherâs girlfriend. Ben said you werenât, andBobbie laughed at him.â
Ben didnât flinch.âAre you going to tell Mom?â Eleanor asked.
May as well cut to the chase.âWe havenât told her yet,â Maisie said.âAre you going to?â Eleanor resisted the urge
to shove Maisie off the bed. Maisie would gonuclear.
âHeâll make me leave, you know,â Eleanorsaid fiercely. âIf Iâm lucky, thatâs the worst thatâllhappen.â
âWeâre not going to tell,â Ben whispered.âBut itâs not fair,â Maisie said, slumping
against the wall.
418/593
âWhat?â Eleanor said.âItâs not fair that you get to leave all the
time,â Maisie said.âWhat do you want me to do?â Eleanor asked.
They both stared at her, desperate and almost â¦almost hopeful.
Everything anybody ever said in this housewas desperate.
Desperate was white noise, as far as Eleanorwas concerned â it was the hope that pulled at herheart with dirty little fingers.
She was pretty sure she was wired wrongsomewhere, that her plugs were switched, be-cause instead of softening toward them â insteadof tenderness â she felt herself go cold and mean.âI canât take you with me,â she said, âif thatâswhat youâre thinking.â
âWhy not?â Ben said. âWeâll just hang outwith the other kids.â
âThere are no other kids,â Eleanor said, âitâsnot like that.â
âYou donât care about us,â Maisie said.
419/593
âI do care,â Eleanor hissed. âI just canât â¦help you.â
The door opened, and Mouse wandered in.âBen, Ben, Ben, whereâs my car, Ben? Whereâsmy car? Ben?â He jumped on Ben for no reason.Sometimes you didnât know until after Mousejumped on you whether he was hugging you ortrying to kill you.
Ben tried to push Mouse off as quietly as hecould. Eleanor threw a book at him. (A paper-back. God.)
Mouse ran out of the room, and Eleanorleaned out of her bed to close the door. She couldpractically open her dresser without getting outof bed.
âI canât help you,â she said. It felt like lettinggo of them in deep water. âI canât even helpmyself.â
Maisieâs face was hard.âPlease donât tell,â Eleanor said.Maisie and Ben exchanged looks again, then
Maisie, still hard and gray, turned to Eleanor.
420/593
âWill you let us use your stuff?ââWhat stuff?â Eleanor asked.âYour comics,â Ben said.âTheyâre not mine.ââYour makeup,â Maisie said.Theyâd probably catalogued her whole freak-
ing bed. Her grapefruit box was packed with con-traband these days, all of it from Park ⦠Theywere already into everything, she was sure.
âYou have to put it away when youâre done,âEleanor said. âAnd the comics arenât mine, Ben,theyâre borrowed. You have to keep them nice â¦
âAnd if you get caught,â she turned to Maisie,âMom will take it all away. Especially themakeup. None of us will have it then.â
They both nodded.âI would have let you use some, anyway,â she
said to Maisie. âYou just had to ask.ââLiar,â Maisie said.And she was right.
Park
421/593
Wednesdays were the worst.No Eleanor. And his dad ignored him all
through dinner and taekwando.Park wondered if it was just the eyeliner that
had done it â or if the eyeliner had been the pen-cil that broke the camelâs back. Like Park hadspent sixteen years acting weak and weird andgirlie, and his dad had borne it on his massiveshoulders. And then one day, Park put onmakeup, and that was it, his dad just shruggedhim off.
Your dad loves you, Eleanor said. And shewas right. But it didnât matter. That was tablestakes. His dad loved him in a completely oblig-atory way, like Park loved Josh.
His dad couldnât stand the sight of him.Park kept wearing eyeliner to school. And he
kept washing it off when he got home. And hisdad kept acting like he wasnât there.
Eleanor
422/593
It was just a matter of time now. If Maisie andBen knew, their mom would find out. Either thekids would tell her, or sheâd find some clueEleanor had overlooked, or something ⦠Itwould be something.
Eleanor didnât have anywhere to hide hersecrets. In a box, on her bed. At Parkâs house, ablock away.
She was running out of time with him.
423/593
CHAPTER 39
Eleanor
Thursday night after dinner, Parkâs grandmacame over to have her hair set, and his mom dis-appeared into the garage. His dad was messingwith the plumbing under the sink, replacing thegarbage disposal. Park was trying to tell Eleanorabout a tape heâd bought. Elvis Costello. Hecouldnât shut up about it.
âThere are a couple songs you might like, bal-lady stuff. But the rest is really fast.â
âLike punk?â She wrinkled her nose. Shecould stand a few Dead Milkmen songs, but otherthan that, she hated Parkâs punk music. âI feellike theyâre yelling at me,â sheâd say when hetried to put punk on her mix tapes. âStop yellingat me, Glenn Danzig!â
âThatâs Henry Rollins.ââThey all sound the same when theyâre
yelling at me.âLately, Park was really into New Wave mu-
sic. Or post-punk or something. He went throughbands like Eleanor went through books.
âNo,â he said, âElvis Costello is more music-al. Gentler. Iâll dub you a copy.â
âOr you could just play it for me. Now.âPark tilted his head. âThat would involve go-
ing into my room.ââOkay,â she said, not quite casually.âOkay?â he asked. âMonths of no, and now,
okay?ââOkay,â Eleanor said. âYouâre always saying
that your mom doesnât care â¦ââMy mom doesnât care.ââSo?âPark stood up jerkily, grinning, and pulled
her up. He stopped at the kitchen. âWeâre goingto listen to music in my room.â
425/593
âFine,â his dad said from under the sink. âJustdonât get anybody pregnant.â
That should have been embarrassing, butParkâs dad had a way of cutting past embarrass-ing. Eleanor wished he wasnât ignoring them allthe time.
Parkâs mom probably let him have girls in hisroom because you could practically see into hisroom from the living room, and you had to walkby to get to the bathroom.
But, to Eleanor, it still felt incredibly private.She couldnât get over the fact that Park spent
most of his time in this room horizontal. (It wasonly a ninety-degree difference, but imagininghim that way blew all her fuses.) Also, hechanged his clothes in here.
There was no place to sit but on his bed,which Eleanor wouldnât consider. So they satbetween his bed and his stereo, where there wasjust enough room to sit with their legs bent.
As soon as they sat down, Park started fast-forwarding through the Elvis Costello tape. He
426/593
had stacks and stacks of tapes, and Eleanorpulled a few out to look at them.
âAh â¦â Park said, pained.âWhat?ââThoseâre alphabetized.ââItâs okay. I know the alphabet.ââRight.â He looked embarrassed. âSorry.
Whenever Cal comes over, he always messesthem up. Okay, this is the song I wanted you tohear. Listen.â
âCal comes over?ââYeah, sometimes.â Park turned up the
volume. âItâs been a while.ââBecause now I just come over â¦ââWhich is okay with me because I like you a
lot more.ââBut donât you miss your other friends?â she
asked.âYouâre not listening,â he said.âNeither are you.âHe paused the tape, like he didnât want to
waste this song as background music. âSorry,â he
427/593
said. âWeâre talking about whether I miss Cal? Ieat lunch with him almost every day.â
âAnd he doesnât mind that you spend the restof your time with me now? None of your friendsmind?â
Park ran his hand through his hair. âI still seethem all at school ⦠I donât know, I donât reallymiss them, Iâve never really missed anybody butyou.â
âBut you donât miss me now,â she said.âWeâre together all the time.â
âAre you kidding? I miss you constantly.âEven though Park washed his face as soon as
he got home, the black around his eyes didnâtcome off completely. It made everything he didlately seem more dramatic.
âThatâs crazy,â she said.Park started laughing. âI know â¦âShe wanted to tell him about Maisie and Ben
and their days being numbered, etc., but hewouldnât understand, and what did she expecthim to do?
428/593
Park pushed play.âWhatâs this song called?â she asked.ââAlison.ââ
Park
Park played Elvis Costello for her â and JoeJackson, and Jonathan Richman and the ModernLovers.
She teased him because it was all so prettyand melodic, and âin the same phylum as Hall &Oates,â and he threatened to evict her from hisroom.
When his mom came to check on them, theywere sitting with a hundred cassette tapesbetween them, and as soon as she walked away,Park leaned over and kissed Eleanor. It seemedlike the best time not to get caught.
She was a little too far away, so he put hishand on her back and pulled her toward him. Hetried to do it like it was something he did all the
429/593
time, as if touching her someplace new wasnâtlike discovering the Northwest Passage.
Eleanor came closer. She put her hands onthe floor between them and leaned into him,which was so encouraging that he put his otherhand on her waist. And then it was too much tobe almost-but-not-really holding her. Park rockedforward onto his knees and pulled her tighter.
Half a dozen cassette tapes cracked undertheir weight. Eleanor fell back, and Park fellforward.
âIâm sorry,â she said. âOh, God ⦠look, whatwe did to Meat is Murder.â
Park sat back and looked at the tapes. Hewanted to sweep them out of the way. âItâsmostly just the cases, I think,â he said. âDonâtworry about it.â He started picking up the brokenplastic.
âThe Smiths and the Smithereens â¦â shesaid. âWe even broke them in alphabetical order.â
430/593
He tried to smile at her, but she wouldnât lookat him. âI should go,â she said. âI think itâs almosteight, anyway.â
âOh. Okay, Iâll walk you.âShe stood up and Park followed her. They
walked outside and down the walk, and whenthey got to his grandparentsâ driveway, Eleanordidnât stop.
Eleanor
Maisie smelled like an Avon lady, and she wasmade up like the whore of Babylon. They weredefinitely going to get caught. Talk about a houseof effing cards. Jee. Zus.
And Eleanor couldnât even think strategy, be-cause all she could think about was Parkâs handson her waist and her back and her stomach âwhich all must feel like nothing heâd ever en-countered. Everyone in Parkâs family was skinnyenough to be in a Special K commercial. Evenhis grandma.
431/593
Eleanor could only be in that scene where theactress pinches an inch, then looks at the cameralike the world is going to end.
Actually, sheâd have to lose weight to be inthat scene. You could pinch an inch â or two, orthree â all over Eleanorâs body. You could prob-ably pinch an inch on her forehead.
Holding hands was fine. Her hands werenât acomplete embarrassment. And kissing seemedsafe because fat lips are okay â and because Parkusually closed his eyes.
But there was no safe place on Eleanorâstorso. There was no place from her neck to herknees where she had any discernibleinfrastructure.
As soon as Park touched her waist, sheâdsucked in her stomach and pitched forward.Which led to all the collateral damage ⦠whichmade her feel like Godzilla. (But even Godzillawasnât fat. He was just ginormous.)
The maddening part was, Eleanor wantedPark to touch her again. She wanted him to touch
432/593
her constantly. Even if it led to Park deciding thatshe was way too much like a walrus to remain hisgirlfriend ⦠Thatâs how good it felt. She waslike one of those dogs whoâve tasted humanblood and canât stop biting. A walrus whoâstasted human blood.
433/593
CHAPTER 40
Eleanor
Park wanted Eleanor to start checking her booksnow, especially after gym class.
âBecause if it is Tina,â he said â you couldtell that he still didnât believe that it was, âyouneed to tell somebody.â
âTell who?â They were sitting in his room,leaning against his bed, trying to pretend thatPark didnât have his arm around her for the firsttime since she crushed his cassette tapes. Justbarely, not quite around her.
âYou could tell Mrs Dunne,â he said. âShelikes you.â
âOkay, so I tell Mrs Dunne, and I show herwhatever awful thing Tina has misspelled on mybooks â and then Mrs Dunne asks, âHow do you
know that Tina wrote that?â Sheâll be just asskeptical as you were, but without the complic-ated romantic history â¦â
âThereâs no complicated romantic history,âPark said.
âDid you kiss her?â Eleanor hadnât meant toask that. Out loud. It was almost like sheâd askedit so many times in her head that it leaked out.
âMrs Dunne? No. But weâve hugged a lot.ââYou know what I mean ⦠Did you kiss
her?âShe was sure that heâd kissed her. She was
sure that theyâd done other stuff, too. Tina was solittle, Park could probably wrap his arms all theway around her and shake his own hands at herwaist.
âI donât want to talk about this,â he said.âBecause you did,â Eleanor said.âIt doesnât matter.ââIt does matter. Was it your first kiss?ââYeah,â he said, âand thatâs one of the reasons
it doesnât count. It was like a practice pitch.â
435/593
âWhat are the other reasons?ââIt was Tina, I was twelve, I didnât even like
girls yet â¦ââBut youâll always remember it,â she said. âIt
was your first kiss.ââIâll remember that it didnât matter,â Park
said.Eleanor wanted to let this go â the most trust-
worthy voices in her head were shouting, âLet itgo!â
âBut â¦â she said, âhow could you kiss her?ââI was twelve.ââBut sheâs awful.ââShe was twelve, too.ââBut ⦠how could you kiss her and then kiss
me?ââI didnât even know you existed.â Parkâs arm
suddenly made contact, full contact, with Elean-orâs waist. He pressed into her side, and she satup, instinctively, trying to spread herself thinner.
âThere arenât even roads between Tina andme â¦â she said. âHow could you like us both?
436/593
Did you have a life-changing head injury in juni-or high?â
Park put his other arm around her. âPlease.Listen to me. It was nothing. It doesnât matter.â
âIt matters,â Eleanor whispered. Now that hisarms were around her, there was almost no spacebetween them. âBecause you were the first personI ever kissed. And that matters.â
He set his forehead against hers. She didnâtknow what to do with her eyes or her hands.
âNothing before you counts,â he said. âAnd Icanât even imagine an after.â
She shook her head. âDonât.ââWhat?ââDonât talk about after.ââI just meant that ⦠I want to be the last per-
son who ever kisses you, too ⦠That sounds bad,like a death threat or something. What Iâm tryingto say is, youâre it. This is it for me.â
âDonât.â She didnât want him to talk like this.Sheâd meant to push him, but not this far.
âEleanor â¦â
437/593
âI donât want to think about an after.ââThatâs what Iâm saying, maybe there wonât
be one.ââOf course there will.â She put her hands on
his chest, so that she could push him away if shehad to. âI mean ⦠God, of course there will. Itâsnot like weâre going to get married, Park.â
âNot now.ââStop.â She tried to roll her eyes, but it hurt.âIâm not proposing,â he said. âIâm just saying
⦠I love you. And I canât imagine stopping â¦âShe shook her head. âBut youâre twelve.ââIâm sixteen â¦â he said. âBono was fifteen
when he met his wife, and Robert Smith wasfourteen â¦â
âRomeo, sweet Romeo â¦ââItâs not like that, Eleanor, and you know it.â
Parkâs arms were tight around her. All the play-fulness in his voice was gone. âThereâs no reasonto think weâre going to stop loving each other,âhe said. âAnd thereâs every reason to think thatwe wonât.â
438/593
I never said I loved you, Eleanor thought.And even after he kissed her, she kept her
hands on his chest.
So. Anyway. Park wanted her to start checkingher book covers. Especially after gym class. Sonow Eleanor waited until almost everybody elsehad changed and left the locker room, and thenshe carefully examined her books for anythingsuspicious.
It was all very clinical.DeNice and Beebi usually waited with her. It
meant that they were late for lunch sometimes,but it also meant that they could all change in rel-ative privacy, which they should have thought ofmonths ago.
There didnât seem to be anything pervy writ-ten on Eleanorâs books today. In fact, Tina hadignored her all through class. Even Tinaâssidekicks (even thuggy Annette) seemed boredwith Eleanor.
439/593
âI think theyâve run out of ways to make funof my hair,â Eleanor said to DeNice while shelooked over her algebra book.
âThey could call you âRonald McDonald,ââDeNice said. âHave they called you that?â
âOr âWendy,ââ Beebi said, lowering her voiceand wolfing, âWhereâs the beef?â
âShut up,â Eleanor said, looking around thelocker room. âLittle pitchers.â
âTheyâre all gone,â DeNice said.âEverybodyâs gone. Theyâre all in the cafeteria,eating my Macho Nachos. Hurry up, girl.â
âYou go ahead,â Eleanor said. âGet us a placein line. I still have to change.â
âAll right,â DeNice said, âbut stop looking atthose books. You said it yourself, thereâs nothingthere. Come on, Beebi.â
Eleanor started packing up her books. Sheheard Beebi shout, âWhereâs the beef?â from thelocker-room door. Dork. Eleanor opened up herlocker.
It was empty.
440/593
Huh.She tried the one above it. Nothing. And
nothing below. No â¦Eleanor started over, opening all the lockers
on the wall, then moving on to the next wall, try-ing not to panic. Maybe theyâd just moved herclothes. Ha. Funny. Super-good joke, Tina.
âWhat are you doing?â Mrs Burt asked.âLooking for my clothes,â Eleanor said.âYou should use the same locker every time,
so itâs easy to remember.ââNo, somebody ⦠I mean, I think somebody
took them.ââThose little bitches â¦â Mrs Burt sighed.
Like she couldnât imagine a bigger hassle.Mrs Burt started opening lockers at the other
end of the room. Eleanor checked the trash andthe showers. Then Mrs Burt called out from thebathroom. âFound them!â
Eleanor walked into the bathroom. The floorwas wet, and Mrs Burt was standing in a stall.
441/593
âIâll get a bag,â Mrs Burt said, pushing pastEleanor.
Eleanor looked down at the toilet. Eventhough she knew what she was going to see there,it still felt like a wet slap in the face. Her newjeans and her cowboy shirt were in a dark pile inthe bowl, and her shoes were crammed under thelip. Somebody had flushed the toilet, and therewas water still spilling over the edge. Eleanorwatched it run.
âHere,â Mrs Burt said, handing Eleanor a yel-low Food 4 Less bag. âFish âem out.â
âI donât want them,â Eleanor said, backingaway. She couldnât wear them anymore anyway.Everybody would know those were her toiletclothes.
âWell, you canât leave them here,â Mrs Burtsaid. âFish them out.â Eleanor stared at herclothes. âCome on,â Mrs Burt said.
Eleanor reached into the toilet and felt tearsslipping down her cheeks. Mrs Burt held the bag
442/593
open. âYouâve got to stop letting them get to you,you know,â she said. âYou just encourage them.â
Yeah, thanks, Eleanor thought, wringing outher jeans over the toilet. She wanted to wipe hereyes, but her hands were wet.
Mrs Burt handed her the bag. âCome on,â shesaid. âIâll write you a pass.â
âFor where?â Eleanor asked.âYour counselorâs office.âEleanor took a sharp breath. âI canât walk
down the hall like this.ââWhat do you want from me, Eleanor?â That
was obviously a rhetorical question; Mrs Burtwasnât even looking at her. Eleanor followed herto the coachâs office and waited for the pass.
As soon as she got out to the hallway, thetears came on hard. She couldnât walk throughthe school like this â in her gymsuit. In front ofboys ⦠And everybody. In front of Tina. God,Tina was probably selling tickets outside thecafeteria. Eleanor couldnât do it. Not like this.
443/593
It wasnât just that her gymsuit was ugly.(Polyester. One-piece. Red-and-white stripeswith an extra-long white zipper.)
It was also extremely tight.The shorts just barely cleared her underwear,
and the fabric was stretched so tight over herchest, the seams were starting to pop under herarms.
She was a tragedy in that gymsuit. A ten-carpileup.
People were already showing up for the nextgym class. A few freshman girls looked at Elean-or, then started whispering. Her bag wasdripping.
Before she could think it through, Eleanorturned the wrong way down the hall and headedfor the door to the football field. She acted likeshe was supposed to be walking out of the build-ing in the middle of the day, like she was onsome kind of weeping/half-dressed/drippy-bagmission.
444/593
The door clicked locked behind her, andEleanor crouched against it, letting herself fallapart. Just for a minute. God. God.
There was a trash can sitting right outside thedoor, and she got up and hurled the Food 4 Lessbag into it. She wiped her eyes with her gymsuit.Okay, she told herself, taking a deep breath, get ittogether. Donât let them get to you. Those wereher new jeans in the trash. And her favoriteshoes. Her Vans. She walked over to the trashand shook her head, reaching down for the bag.Fuck you, Tina. Fuck you to the moon.
She took another deep breath and startedwalking.
There were no classrooms at this end of theschool, so at least no one was watching her. Shestuck close to the building, and when she turnedthe corner, she walked under a row of windows.She thought about walking right home, but thatmight be worse. Itâd definitely be longer.
If she could just get to the front door, thecounselorâs offices were right inside. Mrs Dunne
445/593
would help her. Mrs Dunne wouldnât tell her notto cry.
The security guard at the front door acted likegirls were wandering in and out in their gymclothes all day long. He glanced at Eleanorâs passand waved her on.
Almost there, Eleanor thought. Donât run, justa few more doors â¦
She really should have expected Park to walkthrough one of them.
Ever since the first day theyâd met, Eleanorwas always seeing him in unexpected places. Itwas like their lives were overlapping lines, likethey had their own gravity. Usually, thatserendipity felt like the nicest thing the universehad ever done for her.
Park walked out of a door on the oppositeside of the hallway and stopped as soon as he sawher. She tried to look away, but she didnât do itsoon enough. Parkâs face turned red. He stared ather. She pulled down her shorts and stumbled
446/593
forward, running the last few steps to the coun-selorsâ offices.
âYou donât have to go back there,â her mom saidafter Eleanor had told her the whole story. (Al-most the whole story.)
Eleanor thought for a moment about whatsheâd do if she didnât go back to school. Stayhere all day? And then what?
âItâs okay,â she said. Mrs Dunne had drivenEleanor home herself, and sheâd promised tobring a padlock for her gym locker.
Eleanorâs mom dumped the yellow plasticbag into the bathtub and started rinsing out theclothes, wrinkling her nose, even though theydidnât smell.
âGirls are so mean â¦â she said. âYouârelucky to have one friend you can trust.â
Eleanor must have looked confused.âTina,â her mom said. âYouâre lucky to have
Tina.âEleanor nodded.
447/593
She stayed home that night. Even though itwas Friday, and Parkâs family always watchedmovies and made popcorn in the air popper onFridays.
She couldnât face him.All sheâd see was the look on his face in the
hallway. Sheâd feel like she was still standingthere in her gymsuit.
448/593
CHAPTER 41
Park
Park went to bed early. His mom kept botheringhim about Eleanor. âWhereâs Eleanor tonight?ââShe running late?â âYou get in fight?â
Every time she said Eleanorâs name, Park felthis face go hot.
âI can tell that something wrong,â his momsaid at dinner. âDid you get in fight? Did youbreak up again?â
âNo,â Park said. âI think maybe she wenthome sick. She wasnât on the bus.â
âI have a girlfriend now,â Josh said, âcan shestart coming over?â
âNo girlfriend,â their mom said, âtoo young.ââIâm almost thirteen!â
âSure,â their dad said, âyour girlfriend cancome over. If youâre willing to give up yourNintendo.â
âWhat?â Josh was stricken. âWhy?ââBecause I said so,â his dad said. âIs it a
deal?ââNo! No way,â Josh said. âDoes Park have to
give up Nintendo?ââYep. Is that okay with you, Park?ââFine.ââIâm like Billy Jack,â their dad said, âa warri-
or and a wise-man.âIt wasnât much of a conversation, but it was
the most his dad had said to Park in weeks.Maybe his dad had been bracing for the entireneighborhood to swarm the house with torchesand pitchforks as soon as they saw Park witheyeliner â¦
But almost nobody cared. Not even his grand-parents. (His grandma said he looked likeRudolph Valentino, and he heard his grandpa tell
450/593
his dad, âYou should have seen what kids lookedlike while you were in Korea.â)
âIâm going to bed,â Park said, standing upfrom the table. âI donât feel well either.â
âSo if Park doesnât get to play Nintendo any-more,â Josh asked, âcan I put it in my room?â
âPark can play Nintendo whenever he wants,âtheir dad said.
âGod,â Josh said, âeverything you guys do isunfair.â
Park turned off his light and crawled onto hisbed. He lay on his back because he didnât trusthis front. Or his hands, actually. Or his brain.
After he saw Eleanor today, it hadnât oc-curred to him, not for at least an hour, to wonderwhy she was walking down the hall in her gym-suit. And it took him another hour to realize heshould have said something to her. He could havesaid, âHeyâ or âWhatâs going on?â or âAre youOK?â Instead heâd stared at her like heâd neverseen her before.
He felt like heâd never seen her before.
451/593
Itâs not like he hadnât thought about it (a lot)â Eleanor under her clothes. But he could neverfill in any of the details. The only women hecould actually picture naked were the women inthe magazines his dad every once in a while re-membered to hide under his bed.
Magazines like that made Eleanor freak. Justmention Hugh Hefner, and sheâd be off for halfan hour on prostitution and slavery and the Fallof Rome. Park hadnât told her about his dadâstwenty-year-old Playboys, but he hadnât touchedthem since he met her.
He could fill in some of the details now. Hecould picture Eleanor. He couldnât stop picturingher. Why hadnât he ever noticed how tight thosegymsuits were? And how short â¦
And why hadnât he expected her to be sogrown up? To have so much negative space?
He closed his eyes and saw her again. A stackof freckled heart shapes, a perfectly made DairyQueen ice cream cone. Like Betty Boop drawnwith a heavy hand.
452/593
Hey, he thought. Whatâs going on? Are youokay?
She must not be. She hadnât been on the buson the way home. She hadnât come over afterschool. And tomorrow was Saturday. What if hedidnât see her all weekend?
How could he even look at her now? Hewouldnât be able to. Not without stripping herdown to her gymsuit. Without thinking about thatlong white zipper.
Jesus.
453/593
CHAPTER 42
Park
His family was going to the boat show the nextday, then out to lunch, and maybe to the mall â¦
Park took forever to eat his breakfast and takea shower.
âCome on, Park,â his dad said sharply, âgetdressed and put your makeup on.â
Like heâd wear makeup to the boat show.âCome on,â his mom said, checking her lip-
stick in the hall mirror, âyou know your dad hatecrowds.â
âDo I have to go?ââYou donât want to go?â She scrunched and
fluffed the back of her hair.
âNo, I do,â Park said. He didnât. âBut what ifEleanor comes over? I donât want to miss thechance to talk to her.â
âIs something wrong? You sure you didnâtfight?â
âNo, no fight. Iâm just ⦠worried about her.And you know I canât call her house.â
His mom turned away from the mirror. âOkayâ¦â she said, frowning. âYou stay. But vacuum,okay? And put away big pile of black clothes onyour floor.â
âThanks,â Park said. He hugged her.âPark! Mindy!â His dad was standing at the
front door. âLetâs go!ââPark staying home,â his mom said. âWe go.âHis dad flashed him a look, but didnât argue.
Park wasnât used to being home alone. He vacu-umed. He put his clothes away. He made himselfa sandwich and watched a Young Ones marathonon MTV, then fell asleep on the couch.
When he heard the doorbell, he jerked up toanswer it before he was awake. His heart was
455/593
pounding, the way it does sometimes when yousleep too hard in the middle of the day, like youcanât remember how to wake up.
He was sure it was Eleanor. He opened thedoor without checking.
Eleanor
Their car wasnât in the driveway, so Eleanorfigured Parkâs family wasnât home. They wereprobably off doing awesome family stuff. Eatinglunch at Bonanza and having their portraits takenin matching sweaters.
Sheâd already given up on the door when itopened. And before she could act embarrassedand uncomfortable about yesterday â or pretendthat she wasnât â Park was opening the screendoor and pulling her in by her sleeve.
He didnât even close the door before he puthis arms around her, his entire arms, all down thelength of her back.
456/593
Park usually held Eleanor with his hands onher waist, like they were slow-dancing. Thiswasnât slow-dancing. This was ⦠somethingelse. His arms were around her, and his face wasin her hair, and there was no place for the rest ofher to go but against him.
He was warm ⦠Like really warm and fuzzy-soft. Like a sleeping baby, she thought. (Sort of.Not exactly.)
She tried to feel embarrassed again.Park kicked the door closed and fell back on
it, pulling her even tighter. His hair was cleanand straight and flopping into his eyes, and hiseyes were nearly closed. Fuzzy. Soft.
âWere you sleeping?â she whispered. Like hestill might be.
He didnât answer, but his mouth fell on hers,open, and her head fell back into his hand. Hewas holding her so close, there was nowhere tohide. She couldnât sit up or suck in or keep anysecrets.
457/593
Park made a noise, and it hummed in herthroat. She could feel all ten of his fingers. Onher neck, on her back ⦠Her own hands hungstupidly at her side. Like they werenât even in thesame scene as his. Like she wasnât even in thesame scene.
Park must have noticed, because he pulled hismouth back. He tried to wipe it on the shoulderof his T-shirt, and he looked at her like he wasseeing her for the first time since she got there.
âHey â¦â he said, taking a breath, focusing.âWhatâs going on? Are you okay?â
Eleanor looked at Parkâs face, so full ofsomething she couldnât quite place. His chinhung forward, like his mouth didnât want to pullaway from her, and his eyes were so green theycould turn carbon dioxide into oxygen.
He was touching her all the places she wasafraid to be touched â¦
Eleanor tried one last time to be embarrassed.
Park
458/593
For a second, he thought heâd gone too far.He hadnât even meant to, he was practically
sleepwalking. And heâd been thinking aboutEleanor, dreaming about her, for so many hours;wanting her made him stupid.
She was so still in his arms. He thought for asecond that heâd gone too far, that heâd tripped awire.
And then Eleanor touched him. She touchedhis neck.
Itâs hard to say why this was different fromall the other times sheâd touched him. She wasdifferent. She was still and then she wasnât.
She touched his neck, then drew a line downhis chest. Park wished that he was taller andbroader; he hoped she wouldnât stop.
She was so gentle compared to him. Maybeshe didnât want him like he wanted her. But evenif she wanted him half as much â¦
Eleanor
459/593
This is how she touched him in her head.From jaw to neck to shoulder.He was so much warmer than she expected,
and harder. Like all of his muscles and boneswere right on the surface, like his heart was beat-ing just under his T-shirt.
She touched Park softly, gingerly, just in caseshe touched him wrong.
Park
He relaxed against the door.He felt Eleanorâs hand on his throat, on his
chest, then took her other hand and pressed it tohis face. He made a noise like he was hurt anddecided to feel self-conscious about it later.
If he was shy now, he wouldnât get anythingthat he wanted.
Eleanor
460/593
Park was alive, and she was awake, and this wasallowed.
He was hers.To have and hold. Not forever, maybe â not
forever, for sure â and not figuratively. But liter-ally. And now. Now, he was hers. And he wantedher to touch him. He was like a cat who pushesits head under your hands.
Eleanor brought her hands down Parkâs chestwith her fingertips apart, then brought them upagain under his shirt.
She did it because she wanted to. And be-cause once she started touching him the way shedid in her head, it was hard to stop. And because⦠what if she never had the chance to touch himlike this again?
Park
When he felt her fingers on his stomach, he madethe noise again. He held her to him and pushed
461/593
forward, pushing Eleanor backward â stumblingaround the coffee table to the couch.
In movies, this happens smoothly or comic-ally. In Parkâs living room, it was just awkward.They wouldnât let go of each other, so Eleanorfell back, and Park fell against her in the cornerof the couch.
He wanted to look in her eyes, but it was hardwhen they were this close. âEleanor â¦â hewhispered.
She nodded.âI love you,â he said.She looked up at him, her eyes shiny and
black, then looked away. âI know,â she said.He pulled one of his arms out from under her
and traced her outline against the couch. Hecould spend all day like this, running his handdown her ribs, into her waist, out to her hips andback again ⦠If he had all day, he would. If shewerenât made of so many other miracles.
462/593
âYou know?â he repeated. She smiled, so hekissed her. âYouâre not the Han Solo in this rela-tionship, you know.â
âIâm totally the Han Solo,â she whispered. Itwas good to hear her. It was good to remember itwas Eleanor under all this new flesh.
âWell, Iâm not the Princess Leia,â he said.âDonât get so hung up on gender roles,â
Eleanor said. Park ran his hand out to her hip andback again, catching his thumb under her sweat-er. She swallowed and lifted her chin.
He pulled her sweater up farther and, then,without thinking about why, he pulled up hisshirt, too, and laid his bare stomach against hers.
Eleanorâs face crumpled, and it made himcome unhinged.
âYou can be Han Solo,â he said, kissing herthroat. âAnd Iâll be Boba Fett. Iâll cross the skyfor you.â
Eleanor
463/593
Things she knew now, that she hadnât known twohours ago:
Park was covered with skin. Everywhere.And it was all just as smooth and honey-beautiful as the skin on his hands. It feltthick and richer in some places, more likecrushed velvet than silk. But it was all his.And all wonderful.
She was also covered with skin. And herskin was apparently covered with super-powered nerve endings that hadnât done adamn thing her whole life, but came alivelike ice and fire and bee stings as soon asPark touched her. Wherever Park touchedher.
As embarrassed as she was of her stomachand her freckles and the fact that her bra washeld together with two safety pins, shewanted Park to touch her more than shecould ever feel embarrassed. And when he
464/593
touched her, he didnât seem to care aboutany of those things. Some of them he evenliked. Like her freckles. He said she wascandy-sprinkled.
She wanted him to touch her everywhere.
Heâd stopped at the edge of her bra and onlydipped his fingers into the back of her jeans â butit wasnât Eleanor who stopped him. She neverwould. When Park touched her, it felt better thananything sheâd ever felt in her whole life. Ever.And she wanted to feel that way as much shecould. She wanted to stock up on him.
Nothing was dirty. With Park.Nothing could be shameful.Because Park was the sun, and that was the
only way Eleanor could think to explain it.
Park
Once it started to get dark, he felt like his parentscould walk in at any minute, like they should
465/593
have been home a long time ago â and he didnâtwant them to find him like this, with his kneebetween Eleanorâs legs and his hand on her hipand his mouth as far as it could reach down theneck of her sweater.
He pulled away from her and tried to thinkclearly again. âWhere are you going?â she asked.
âI donât know. Nowhere ⦠My parentsshould be home soon, we should get it together.â
âOkay,â she said, and sat up. But she lookedso bewildered and beautiful that he climbed backon top of her and pushed her all the way down.
A half-hour later, he tried again. He stood upthis time.
âIâm going to the bathroom,â he said.âGo,â she said. âDonât look back.âHe took a step, then looked back.âIâll go,â she said a few minutes later.While she was gone, Park turned up the
volume on the TV. He got them both Cokes andlooked at the couch to see if it looked illicit. Itdidnât seem to.
466/593
When Eleanor came back, her face was wet.âDid you wash your face?ââYeah â¦â she said.âWhy?ââBecause I looked weird.ââAnd you thought you could wash it off?âHe gave her the same once-over heâd given
the couch. Her lips were swollen, and her eyesseemed wilder than usual. But Eleanorâs sweaterswere always stretched out, and her hair alwayslooked tangled.
âYou look fine,â he said. âWhat about me?âShe looked at him, and then smiled. âGood
â¦â she said. âJust really, really good.âHe held out his hand to her, and pulled her
onto the couch. Smoothly, this time.She sat next to him and looked down at her
lap.Park leaned against her. âItâs not going to be
weird now,â he said, softly, âis it?âShe shook her head and laughed. âNo,â she
said, and then, âonly for a minute, only a little.â
467/593
Heâd never seen her face so open. Her browswerenât pulled together, her nose wasnâtscrunched. He put his arm around her, and shelaid her head on his chest without any prompting.
âOh, look,â she said, âThe Young Ones.ââYeah ⦠Hey. You still havenât told me â
what was going on yesterday? When I saw you?What was wrong?â
She sighed. âI was on my way to MrsDunneâs office because somebody in gym tookmy clothes.â
âTina?ââI donât know, probably.ââJesus â¦â he said, âthatâs terrible.ââItâs okay.â She actually sounded like it was.âDid you find them? Your clothes?ââYeah ⦠I really, really donât want to talk
about it.ââOkay,â he said.Eleanor pressed her cheek into his chest, and
Park hugged her. He wished that they could go
468/593
through life like this. That he could physicallyput himself between Eleanor and the world.
Maybe Tina really was a monster.âPark?â Eleanor said. âJust one more thing. I
mean, can I ask you something?ââYou know you can ask me anything. Weâve
got a deal.âShe set her hand over his heart. âDid ⦠the
way you acted today have something to do withseeing me yesterday?â
He almost didnât want to answer. Yesterdayâsconfusing lust felt even more inappropriate nowthat he knew the upsetting backstory. âYeah,â hesaid quietly.
Eleanor didnât say anything for a minute orso. And then â¦
âTina would be so pissed.â
Eleanor
When Parkâs parents got home, they seemedgenuinely glad to see Eleanor. His dad had
469/593
bought a new hunting rifle at the boat show, andhe tried to show her how it worked.
âYou can buy guns at a boat show?â Eleanorasked.
âYou can buy anything at a boat show,â hisdad said. âAnything worth having.â
âBooks?â she asked.âBooks about guns and boats.âShe stayed late because it was Saturday, and
on the way home she and Park stopped at hisgrandparentsâ driveway, as usual.
But tonight Park didnât lean over and kissher. Instead, he held her tight.
âDo you think weâll ever be alone like thatagain?â she asked. She felt the tears in her eyes.
âEver? Yes. Soon? I donât know â¦âShe hugged him as hard as she could, and
then she walked home alone.
Richie was home and awake and watchingSaturday Night Live. Ben was asleep on the floor,and Maisie was sleeping next to Richie on thecouch.
470/593
Eleanor would have gone straight to bed, butshe had to go to the bathroom. Which meantwalking between him and the TV. Twice.
When she got to the bathroom, she pulled herhair back tight and washed her face again. Shehurried back past the TV without looking up.
âWhere have you been?â Richie asked.âWhere do you go all the time?â
âTo my friendâs house,â Eleanor said. Shekept walking.
âWhat friend?ââTina,â Eleanor said. She put her hand on the
bedroom door.âTina,â Richie said. There was a cigarette in
his mouth, and he was holding a can of Old Mil-waukee. âTinaâs house must be fucking Disney-land, huh? You canât get enough.â
She waited.âEleanor?â she heard her mom calling from
the bedroom. She sounded half asleep.
471/593
âSo, whatâd you spend your Christmas moneyon?â Richie asked. âI told you to buy yourselfsomething nice.â
The bedroom door opened, and her mothercame out. She was wearing Richieâs bathrobe âone of those Asian souvenir robes, red satin, witha big gaudy tiger.
âEleanor,â her mom said, âgo to bed.ââI was just asking Eleanor what she bought
with her Christmas money,â Richie said.If Eleanor made something up now, heâd
want to see whatever it was. If she said shehadnât spent the money, he might want it back.
âA necklace,â she said.âA necklace,â he repeated. He looked at her
blearily, like he was trying to come up withsomething awful to say, but he just took anotherdrink and leaned back in his chair.
âGood night, Eleanor,â her mom said.
472/593
CHAPTER 43
Park
Parkâs parents almost never fought, and whenthey did, it was always about him or Josh.
His parents had been arguing in their bed-room for more than an hour, and when it wastime to leave for Sunday dinner, their mom cameout and told the boys to go ahead without them.âTell Grandma I have headache.â
âWhat did you do?â Josh asked Park as theycut through the front lawn.
âNothing,â Park said. âWhat did you do?ââNothing. Itâs you. When I went to the bath-
room, I heard mom say your name.âBut Park hadnât done anything. Not since the
eyeliner â which he knew wasnât dead, but it
seemed in remission. Maybe his parents knewsomehow about yesterday â¦
Even if they did, Park hadnât done anythingwith Eleanor that heâd ever been explicitly toldnot to do. His mom never talked to him aboutthat kind of thing. And his dad hadnât said any-thing more than âDonât get anybody pregnantâsince he told Park about sex in the fifth grade.(Heâd told Josh at the same time, which wasinsulting.)
Anyway, they hadnât gone that far. He hadnâttouched her anywhere that you couldnât show ontelevision. Even though heâd wanted to.
He wished now that he had. It might bemonths before they were alone again.
Eleanor
She went to Mrs Dunneâs office Monday morn-ing before class, and Mrs Dunne gave her a brandnew combination lock. It was hot pink.
474/593
âWe talked to some of the girls in your class,âMrs Dunne said, âbut they all played dumb.Weâre still going to get to the bottom of this, Ipromise.â
There is no bottom, Eleanor thought. Thereâsjust Tina.
âItâs okay,â she told Mrs Dunne. âIt doesnâtmatter.â
Tina had watched Eleanor get on the bus thatmorning with her tongue on her top lip, like shewas waiting for Eleanor to spaz out â or like shewas trying to see whether Eleanor was wearingany toilet clothes. But Park was right there, prac-tically pulling Eleanor into his lap â so it waseasy to ignore Tina and everybody else. Helooked so cute this morning. Instead of his usualscary black band T-shirt, he was wearing a greenshirt that said âKiss Me, Iâm Irish.â
He walked with her to the counselorsâ office,and told her that if anybody stole her clothestoday, she was to find him, immediately.
Nobody did.
475/593
Beebi and DeNice had already heard aboutwhat happened from somebody in another class âwhich meant that the whole school knew. Theysaid they were never going to let Eleanor walkalone to lunch again, Macho Nachos be damned.
âThose skanks need to know you havefriends,â DeNice said.
âMmm-hmm,â Beebi agreed.
Park
His mom was waiting in the Impala Monday af-ternoon when Park and Eleanor got off the bus.She rolled down the window.
âHi, Eleanor, sorry, but Park has errand torun. We see you tomorrow, okay?â
Sure,â Eleanor said. She looked at him, andhe reached out to squeeze her hand as she walkedaway.
He got into the car. âCome on, come on,â hismom said, âwhy you do everything so slow?Here.â She handed him a brochure. State of
476/593
Nebraska Driverâs Manual. âPractice test at end,âshe said, ânow buckle up.â
âWhere are we going?â he asked.âTo get your driving license, dummy.ââDoes Dad know?âHis mom sat on a pillow when she drove and
hung forward on the steering wheel. âHe knows,but you donât have to talk to him about it, okay?This is our business right now, you and me. Now,look at test. Not hard. I pass on first try.â
Park flipped to the back of the book andlooked at the practice exam. Heâd studied thewhole manual when he turned fifteen and got hislearnerâs permit.
âIs Dad going to be mad at me?â he asked.âWhose business is this right now?ââOurs,â he said.âYou and me,â she said.
Park passed the test on his first try. He even par-allel parked the Impala, which was like parallelparking a Star Destroyer. His mom wiped his
477/593
eyelids with a Kleenex before he had his picturetaken.
She let him drive home. âSo, if we donât tellDad,â Park asked, âdoes that mean I canât everdrive?â He wanted to drive Eleanor somewhere.Anywhere.
âI work on it,â his mom said. âMeantime, youhave your license if you need it. For emergency.â
That seemed like a pretty weak excuse to gethis license. Park had gone sixteen years without adriving emergency.
The next morning on the bus, Eleanor asked himwhat his big secret errand was, and he handed herhis license.
âWhat?â she said. âLook at you, look at this!âShe didnât want to give it back.âI donât have any pictures of you,â she said.âIâll get you another one,â he said.âYou will? Really?ââYou can have one of my school pictures. My
mom has tons.â
478/593
âYou have to write something on the back,âshe said.
âLike what?ââLike, âHey, Eleanor, KIT, LYLAS, stay
sweet, Park.âââBut I donât L-Y like an S,â he said. âAnd
youâre not sweet.ââIâm sweet,â she said, affronted, holding back
his license.âNo ⦠youâre other good things,â he said,
snatching it from her, âbut not sweet.ââIs this where you tell me that Iâm a scoun-
drel, and I say that I think you like me becauseIâm a scoundrel? Because weâve already coveredthis, Iâm the Han Solo.â
âIâm going to write, âFor Eleanor, I love you.Park.ââ
âGod, donât write that, my mom might findit.â
Eleanor
479/593
Park gave her a school picture. It was from Octo-ber, but he already looked so different now.Older. In the end, Eleanor hadnât let him writeanything on the back because she didnât wanthim to ruin it.
They hung out in his bedroom after dinner(Tater Tot casserole) and managed to sneakkisses while they looked through all of Parkâs oldschool pictures. Seeing him as a little kid justmade her want to kiss him more. (Gross, butwhatever. As long as she didnât want to kiss actu-al little kids, she wasnât going to worry about it.)
When Park asked her for a picture, she wasrelieved that she didnât have any to give him.
âWeâll take one,â he said.âUm ⦠okay.ââOkay, cool, Iâll get my momâs camera.ââNow?ââWhy not now?âShe didnât have an answer.His mom was thrilled to take her picture. This
called for Makeover, Part II â which Park cut
480/593
short, thank God, saying, âMom, I want a photothat actually looks like Eleanor.â
His mom insisted on taking one of them to-gether, too, which Park didnât mind at all. He puthis arm around her.
âShouldnât we wait?â Eleanor asked. âFor aholiday or something more memorable?â
âI want to remember tonight,â Park said.He was such a dork sometimes.
Eleanor must have been acting too happy whenshe got home because her mom followed her tothe back of the house like she could smell it onher. (Happiness smelled like Parkâs house. LikeSkin So Soft and all four food groups.)
âAre you going to take a bath?â her momasked.
âUh-huh.ââIâll watch the door for you.âEleanor turned on the hot water and climbed
into the empty bath tub. It was so cold by theback door that the bath water started cooling off
481/593
before the tub was even full. Eleanor took bathsin such a hurry she was usually done by then.
âI ran into Eileen Benson at the store today,âher mom said. âDo you remember her fromchurch?â
âI donât think so,â Eleanor said. Her familyhadnât gone to church in three years.
âShe had a daughter your age â Tracy.ââMaybe â¦ââWell, sheâs pregnant,â her mom said. âAnd
Eileenâs a wreck. Tracy got involved with a boyin their neighborhood, a black boy. Eileenâs hus-band is having a fit.â
âI donât remember them,â Eleanor said. Thetub was almost full enough to rinse her hair.
âWell, it just made me think about how luckyI am,â her mom said.
âThat you didnât get involved with a blackguy?â
âNo,â her mom said. âIâm talking about you.How lucky I am that youâre so smart about boys.â
482/593
âIâm not smart about boys,â Eleanor said. Sherinsed her hair quickly, then stood up, coveringherself with a towel while she got dressed.
âYouâve stayed away from them. Thatâssmart.â
Eleanor pulled out the drain and carefullypicked up her dirty clothes. Parkâs photo was inher back pocket, and she didnât want it to get wet.Her mom was standing by the stove, watchingher.
âSmarter than I ever was,â her mom said.âAnd braver. I havenât been on my own since theeighth grade.â
Eleanor hugged her dirty jeans to her chest.âYou act like there are two kinds of girls,â shesaid. âThe smart ones and the ones that boyslike.â
âThatâs not far from the truth,â her mom said,trying to put her hand on Eleanorâs shoulder.Eleanor took a step back. âYouâll see,â her momsaid. âWait until youâre older.â
483/593
They both heard Richieâs truck pull into thedriveway.
Eleanor pushed past her mother and rushed toher bedroom. Ben and Mouse slipped in just be-hind her.
Eleanor couldnât think of a place safe enough forParkâs photo, so she zipped it into the pocket ofher school bag. After sheâd looked at it again andagain and again.
484/593
CHAPTER 44
Eleanor
Wednesday night wasnât the worst.Park had taekwando, but Eleanor still had
Park, the memory of him, everywhere. (Every-where heâd touched her felt untouchable. Every-where heâd touched her felt safe.)
Richie had to work late that night, so hermom made Totinoâs Party Pizzas for dinner.They must have been on sale at Food 4 Less, be-cause the freezer was stuffed with them.
They watched Highway to Heaven while theyate. Then Eleanor sat with Maisie on the livingroom floor, and they tried to teach Mouse âDownDown Baby.â
It was hopeless. He could either rememberthe words or the clapping, but never both at once.
It drove Maisie crazy. âStart again,â she keptsaying.
âCome help us, Ben,â Eleanor said, âitâs easierwith four.â
Down, down, baby, down by the rollercoaster.Sweet, sweet, baby, Iâll never let you go.Shimmy, shimmy, cocoa puff, shimmy . . .
âOh my God, Mouse. Right hand first â rightfirst. Okay. Start again â¦â
Down, down, baby . . .
âMouse!â
486/593
CHAPTER 45
Park
âI donât feel like cooking dinner,â his mom said.It was just the three of them, Park, his mom
and Eleanor, sitting on the couch, watchingWheel of Fortune. His dad had gone turkey hunt-ing and wouldnât be home until late, and Joshwas staying over at a friendâs.
âI could heat up a pizza,â Park said.âOr we could go get pizza,â his mom said.Park looked at Eleanor; he didnât know what
the rules were, as far as going out. Her eyes gotbig, and she shrugged.
âYeah,â Park said, grinning, âletâs go getpizza.â
âI feel too lazy,â his mom said. âYou andEleanor go get pizza.â
âYou want me to drive?ââSure,â his mom said. âYou too scared?âJeez, now his mom was calling him a pussy.âNo, I can drive. Do you want Pizza Hut?
Should we call it in first?ââYou go where you want,â his mom said. âIâm
not even very hungry. You go. Eat dinner. Seemovie or something.â
He and Eleanor both stared at her.âAre you sure?â he asked.âYeah, go,â she said, âI never get house to
myself.âShe was home all day, every day by herself,
but Park decided not to mention it. He and Elean-or stood up cautiously from the couch. Like theywere expecting his mom to say âApril fools!â twoweeks late.
âKeys on hook,â she said. âHand me mypurse.â She gave him twenty dollars from herwallet, and then ten more.
âThanks â¦â Park said, still hesitant. âI guessweâll go now?â
488/593
âNot yet â¦â His mom looked at Eleanorâsclothes and frowned. âEleanor canât go out likethat.â If they wore the same size, sheâd be forcingEleanor into a stonewashed miniskirt about now.
âBut Iâve looked like this all day,â Eleanorsaid. She was wearing army surplus pants and ashort-sleeved menâs shirt over some kind of long-sleeved purple T-shirt. Park thought she lookedcool. (He actually thought she looked adorable,but that word would make Eleanor gag.)
âJust let me fix your hair,â his mom said. Shepulled Eleanor into the bathroom and startedpulling bobby pins out of her hair. âDown, down,down,â she said.
Park leaned against the doorway andwatched.
âItâs weird that youâre watching this,â Eleanorsaid.
âItâs nothing I havenât seen before,â he said.âPark probably help me do your hair on wed-
ding day,â his mom said.
489/593
He and Eleanor both looked at the floor. âIâllwait for you in the living room,â he said.
In a few minutes, she was ready. Her hairlooked perfect, every curl shiny and on purpose,and her lips were a glossy pink. He could tellfrom here that sheâd taste like strawberries.
âOkay,â his mom said, âgo. Have fun.âThey walked out to the Impala, and Park
opened the door for Eleanor. âI can open my owndoor,â she said. And by the time he got to hisside, sheâd leaned over the seat and pushed hisdoor open.
âWhere should we go?â he asked.âI donât know,â she said, sinking down in her
seat. âCan we just get out of the neighborhood? Ifeel like Iâm sneaking across the Berlin Wall.â
âOh,â he said, âyeah.â He started the car andlooked over at her. âGet down more. Your hairglows in the dark.â
âThanks.ââYou know what I mean.â
490/593
He started driving west. There was nothingeast of the Flats but the river.
âDonât drive by the Rail,â she said.âThe what?ââTurn right here.ââOkay â¦âHe looked down at her â she was crouching
on the floor â and laughed.âItâs not funny.ââItâs kind of funny,â he said. âYouâre on the
floor, and Iâm only getting to drive because mydadâs out of town.â
âYour dad wants you to drive. All you have todo is learn how to drive a stick.â
âI already know how to drive a stick.ââThen whatâs the problem?ââThe problem is me,â he said, feeling irritated.
âHey, weâre out of the neighborhood, can you situp now?â
âIâll sit up when we get to Twenty-fourthStreet.â
491/593
She sat up at 24th Street, but they didnât talkagain until 42nd.
âWhere are we going?â she asked.âI donât know,â he said. He really didnât. He
knew how to get to school and how to get down-town, and that was it. âWhere do you want togo?â
âI donât know,â she said.
Eleanor
She wanted to go to Inspiration Point. Which, asfar as she knew, only existed on Happy Days.
And she didnât want to say to Park, âHey,where do you kids go when you want to fog upthe windows?â Because, what would he think ofher? And what if he had an answer?
Eleanor was trying really hard not be over-awed by Parkâs driving skills, but every time hechanged lanes or checked the rearview mirror,she caught herself swooning. He might as well be
492/593
lighting a cigarette or ordering a Scotch on therocks, it made him seem so much older â¦
Eleanor didnât have her learnerâs permit. Hermom wasnât even allowed to drive, so gettingEleanorâs license wasnât a priority.
âDo we have to go somewhere?â she asked.âWell, we have to go somewhere â¦â Park
said.âBut do we have to do something?ââWhat do you mean?ââCanât we just go somewhere and be togeth-
er? Where do people go to be together? I donâteven care if we get out of the car â¦â
He looked over at her, then looked back,nervously, at the road. âOkay,â he said. âYeah.Yeah, just let me â¦â
He pulled into a parking lot and turnedaround.
âWeâll go downtown.â
Park
493/593
They did get out of the car. Once they weredowntown, Park wanted to show Eleanor DrasticPlastic and the Antiquarium and all the other re-cord stores. Sheâd never even been to the OldMarket, which was practically the only place togo in Omaha.
There were a bunch of other kids hanging outdowntown, a lot of them looking much weirderthan Eleanor. Park took her to his favorite pizzaplace. And then his favorite ice cream place. Andhis third favorite comic book shop.
He kept pretending that they were on a realdate, and then heâd remember that they were.
Eleanor
Park held her hand the whole night, like he washer boyfriend. Because he is your boyfriend,dummy, she kept telling herself.
Much to the dismay of the girl working at therecord store. She had eight holes in each ear, andshe clearly thought Park was a whole closet full
494/593
of catâs pajamas. The girl looked at Eleanor like,are you kidding me? And Eleanor looked backlike, I know, right?
They walked down every street of the Marketarea, and then across the street, into a park.Eleanor didnât even know all this existed. Shehadnât realized Omaha could be such a nice placeto live. (In her head, this was Parkâs doing, too.The world rebuilt itself into a better place aroundhim.)
Park
They ended up at Central Park. Omahaâs version.Eleanor had never been here before either, andeven though it was wet and muddy and still kindof cold, she kept saying how nice it was.
âOh, look,â she said. âSwans.ââI think those are geese,â he said.âWell, theyâre the best-looking geese Iâve
ever seen.â
495/593
They sat on one of the park benches andwatched the geese settle in on the bank of themanmade lake. Park put his arm around Eleanorand felt her lean against him.
âLetâs keep doing this,â he said.âWhat?ââGoing out.ââOkay,â she said. She didnât say anything
about him learning how to drive a manual trans-mission. Which he appreciated.
âWe should go to prom,â he said.âWhat?â She lifted up her head.âProm. You know, prom.ââI know what it is, but why would we go
there?âBecause he wanted to see Eleanor in a pretty
dress. Because he wanted to help his mom do herhair.
âBecause itâs prom,â he said.âAnd itâs lame,â she said.âHow do you know?â
496/593
âBecause the theme is âI Want to Know WhatLove Is.â
âThatâs not such a bad song,â he said.âAre you drunk, itâs Foreigner.âPark shrugged and pulled one of her curls
straight. âI know that prom is lame,â he said. âButitâs not something you can go back and do. Youonly get one chance.â
âActually, you get three chances â¦ââOkay, will you go to prom with me next
year?âShe started laughing. âYeah,â she said, âsure.
We can go next year. That will give my mouseand bird friends plenty of time to make me adress. Totally. Yes. Letâs go to prom.â
âYou think itâs never going to happen,â hesaid. âYouâll see. Iâm not going anywhere.â
âNot until you learn how to drive a stick.âShe was relentless.
Eleanor
497/593
Prom. Right. That was going to happen.The amount of chicanery it would take to slip
prom past her mother ⦠it boggled the mind.Though now that Park had suggested it,
Eleanor could almost see it working. She couldtell her mom that she was going to prom withTina. (Good old Tina.) And she could get readyat Parkâs house, his mom would love that. Theonly thing Eleanor would have to figure out wasthe dress â¦
Did they even make prom dresses in her size?Sheâd have to shop in the mother-of-the-bridesection. And sheâd have to rob a bank. Seriously.Even if a hundred-dollar bill fell right out of thesky, Eleanor could never spend it on somethingas stupid as a prom dress.
Sheâd spend it on new Vans. Or a decent bra.Or a boom box â¦
Actually, sheâd probably just give it to hermom.
Prom. As if.
498/593
Park
After sheâd agreed to go to next yearâs prom withhim, Eleanor also agreed to accompany Park tohis first cotillion, the Academy Awards after-party, and any and all âballsâ to which he re-ceived invitations.
She giggled so much, the geese complained.âGo on and honk,â Eleanor said. âYou think
you can intimidate me with your swanlike goodlooks, but Iâm not that kind of girl.â
âLucky for me,â Park said.âWhy is that lucky for you?ââNever mind.â He wished he hadnât said it.
Heâd meant to be funny and self-deprecating, buthe didnât actually want to talk about how shemanaged to be attracted to him.
Eleanor was studying him coolly.âYouâre the reason that goose thinks Iâm shal-
low,â she said.âI think itâs a gander, right?â Park said. âThe
males are ganders?â
499/593
âOh, right, gander. That suits him. Pretty boy⦠So, why is that lucky for you?â
âBecause,â he said, like both syllables hurt.âBecause, why?â she asked.âIsnât that my line?ââI thought I could you ask you anything â¦â
she said. âBecause, why?ââBecause of my all-American good looks.â
He ran his hand through his hair and lookeddown at the mud.
âAre you saying that youâre not good-look-ing?â she asked.
âI donât want to talk about this,â Park said,hanging onto the back of his neck. âCan we goback to talking about prom?
âAre you saying it just so that Iâll tell youhow cute you are?â
âNo,â he said. âIâm saying it because itâs kindof obvious.â
âItâs not obvious,â Eleanor said. She turnedon the bench so she was facing him, and pulledhis hand down.
500/593
âNobody thinks Asian guys are hot,â Parksaid finally. He had to look away from her whenhe said it â way away, he turned his head com-pletely. âNot here, anyway. I assume Asian guysdo all right in Asia.â
âThatâs not true,â Eleanor argued. âLook atyour mom and dad â¦â
âAsian girls are different. White guys thinktheyâre exotic.â
âBut â¦ââAre you trying to come up with a super-hot
Asian guy, so you can prove me wrong? Becausethere arenât any. Iâve had my whole life to thinkabout this.â
Eleanor folded her arms. Park looked out atthe lake.
âWhat about that old TV show,â she said,âwith the karate guy?â
âKung Fu?ââYeah.ââThat actor was white, and that character was
a monk.â
501/593
âWhat about â¦ââThere arenât any,â Park said. âLook at
M*A*S*H. The whole show takes place in Korea,and the doctors are always flirting with Koreangirls, right? But the nurses donât use their R&Rto go to Seoul to pick up hot Korean guys.Everything that makes Asian girls seem exoticmakes Asian guys seem like girls.â
The gander was still honking at them. Parkpicked up a chunk of melting snow and tossed ithalf-heartedly in the gooseâs direction. He stillcouldnât look at Eleanor.
âI donât know what any of that has to do withme,â she said.
âIt has everything to do with me,â heanswered.
âNo.â She put her hand on his chin and madehim face her. âIt doesnât ⦠I donât even knowwhat it means that youâre Korean.â
âBeyond the obvious?ââYeah,â she said, âexactly. Beyond the
obvious.â
502/593
Then she kissed him. He loved it when shekissed him first.
âWhen I look at you,â she said, leaning intohim, âI donât know if Iâm thinking youâre cutebecause youâre Korean, but I donât think itâs inspite of it. I just know that I think youâre cute.Like, so cute, Park â¦â
He loved it when she said his name.âMaybe Iâm really attracted to Korean guys,â
she said, âand I donât even know it.ââGood thing Iâm the only Korean guy in
Omaha,â he said.âAnd good thing Iâm never getting out of this
dump.âIt was getting cold, and probably late; Park
wasnât wearing a watch.He stood up and pulled Eleanor to her feet.
They held hands and cut through the park to getto the car.
âI donât even know what it means to beKorean,â he said.
503/593
âWell, I donât know what it means to be Dan-ish and Scottish,â she said. âDoes it matter?â
âI think so,â he said, âbecause itâs the number-one thing people use to identify me. Itâs my mainthing.â
âIâm telling you,â she said, âI think your mainthing might be that youâre cute. Youâre practic-ally adorable.â
Park didnât mind the word adorable.
Eleanor
Theyâd parked on the far side of the Market, andthe lot was mostly empty by the time they gotback. Eleanor felt tense and reckless again.Maybe it was something about this car â¦
The Impala might not look pervy on the out-side, not like a fully carpeted custom van orsomething â but the inside was a different story.The front seat was almost as big as Eleanorâsbed, and the back seat was an Erica Jong noveljust waiting to happen.
504/593
Park opened the door for her, then ran aroundthe car to get in. âItâs not as late as I thought,â hesaid, looking at the clock on the dash. 8:30.
âYeah â¦â she said. She put her hand down onthe seat between them. She tried to do it casually,but it came off pretty obvious.
Park laid his hand on top of hers.It was just that kind of night. Every time she
looked at him, he was looking back at her. Everytime she thought about kissing him, he wasalready closing his eyes.
Read my mind now, she thought.âAre you hungry?â he asked.âNo,â she said.âOkay.â Park took his hand away and put the
key in the ignition. Eleanor reached up andcaught his sleeve before he could turn it.
He dropped the keys and, all in one motion,he turned and scooped her into his arms. Seri-ously, scooped. He was always stronger than sheexpected him to be.
505/593
If you were watching them now (and youtotally could because the windows werenâtfogged over yet) youâd think that Eleanor andPark did this kind of thing all the time. Not justthe once before.
This time was already different.They werenât moving forward in orderly
steps, like a game of Mother May I? They wer-enât even kissing each other square on the mouth.(Lining things up neatly would take too long.)Eleanor climbed up his shirt, climbing on top ofhim. And Park kept pulling her to him, evenwhen she couldnât come any closer.
She was wedged between Park and the steer-ing wheel, and when he pushed his hand up hershirt, she leaned against the horn. They bothjumped, and Park accidentally bit her tongue.
âAre you okay?â he asked.âYeah,â she said, glad that he didnât pull his
hand away. Her tongue didnât seem to be bleed-ing. âYou?â
506/593
âYeah â¦â He was breathing heavy, and itwas wonderful. I did this to him, she told herself.
âDo you think â¦â he said.âWhat?â He probably thought they should
stop. No, she thought, no, I donât think. Donâtthink, Park.
âDo you think we should ⦠donât think Iâm acreep, okay? Do you think we should get in theback seat?â
She pushed off of him and slid over the backseat. God, it was huge, it was glorious.
Not even a second later, Park landed on topof her.
Park
She felt so good underneath, even better thanheâd expected. (And heâd expected her to feellike heaven, plus nirvana, plus that scene in WillyWonka where Charlie starts to fly.) Park wasbreathing so hard, he couldnât get any air.
507/593
It seemed impossible that this could feel asgood to Eleanor as it did to him â but she wasmaking these faces ⦠She looked like a girl in aPrince video. If Eleanor was feeling anything likewhat he was feeling, how were they ever sup-posed to stop?
He pulled her shirt up over her head.âBruce Lee,â she whispered.âWhat?â That didnât seem right. Parkâs hands
froze.âSuper-hot Asian guy. Bruce Lee.ââOh â¦â He laughed, he couldnât help it.
âOkay. Iâll give you Bruce Lee â¦âShe arched her back and he closed his eyes.
Heâd never get enough of her.
508/593
CHAPTER 46
Eleanor
Richieâs truck was in the driveway, but the wholehouse was dark, thank God. Eleanor was sure thatsomething would give her away. Her hair. Hershirt. Her mouth. She felt radioactive.
She and Park had been sitting in the alley fora while, in the front seat, just holding hands andfeeling whiplashed. At least, thatâs how Eleanorfelt. It wasnât that she and Park had gone too far,necessarily â but theyâd gone a whole lot fartherthan sheâd been prepared for. Sheâd never expec-ted to have a love scene straight out of a JudyBlume book.
Park must be feeling strange, too. He satthrough two Bon Jovi songs without even
touching the radio. Eleanor had left a mark on hisshoulder, but you couldnât see it anymore.
This was her momâs fault.If Eleanor were allowed to have normal rela-
tionships with boys, she wouldnât have felt likeshe had to hit a home run the very first time sheended up in the back seat of a car â she wouldnâthave felt like it might be her only time at bat.(And she wouldnât be making these stupid base-ball metaphors.)
It hadnât been a home run, anyway. Theyâdstopped at second base. (At least, she thought itwas second base. Sheâd heard conflicting defini-tions for the bases.) Still â¦
It was wonderful.So wonderful that she wasnât sure how theyâd
survive never doing it again.âI should go in,â she said to Park, after theyâd
been sitting in the car a half-hour or more. âIâmusually home by now.â
He nodded but didnât look up or let go of herhand.
510/593
âOkay,â she said. âWeâre ⦠okay, right?âHe looked up then. His hair had flattened out,
and it fell in his eyes. He looked concerned.âYeah,â he said. âOh. Yeah. Iâm just â¦â
She waited.He closed his eyes and shook his head, like
he was embarrassed.âI ⦠just really donât want to say goodbye to
you, Eleanor. Ever.âHe opened his eyes and looked straight into
her. Maybe this was third base.She swallowed. âYou donât have to say good-
bye to me ever,â she said. âJust tonight.âPark smiled. Then he raised an eyebrow.
Eleanor wished she could do that.âTonight â¦â he said, âbut not ever?âShe rolled her eyes. She was talking like him
now. Like an idiot. She hoped it was too dark inthe alley for him to see her blush.
âGoodbye,â she said, shaking her head. âIâllsee you tomorrow.â She opened the door to theImpala; it weighed as much as a horse. Then she
511/593
stopped and looked back at him. âBut weâre okay,right?â
âWeâre perfect,â he said, leaning forwardquickly and kissing her cheek. âIâll wait for youto get in.â
As soon as Eleanor slipped in the house, shecould hear them fighting.
Richie was yelling about something, and hermom was crying. Eleanor moved toward her bed-room as quietly as she could.
All the little kids were on the floor, evenMaisie. They were sleeping through the chaos. Iwonder how often I sleep through it. Eleanorthought. She managed to swing onto her bedwithout stepping on anybody, but she landed onthe cat. He squawked, and she pulled him up andonto her lap. âShhh,â she breathed, scratching hisneck.
Richie shouted again â âmy houseââ andEleanor and the cat both jumped. Somethingcrunched beneath her.
512/593
She reached under her leg and pulled out abadly crumpled comic book. An X-Men annual.Damn it, Ben. She tried to smooth the comic outon her lap, but it was covered in some goop. Theblanket felt wet, too, it was lotion or something⦠No, liquid makeup. With little bits of brokenglass. Eleanor carefully picked a shard out of thecatâs tail and set it aside, then wiped her wet fin-gers on his fur. A length of oily-brown cassettetape was wrapped around his leg. Eleanor pulledit free. She looked down the bed and blinked un-til her eyes adjusted to the dark â¦
Torn comic book pages.Powder.Little pools of green eyeshadow â¦Miles of cassette tape.Her headphones were snapped in half and
hanging from the edge of the bunk. Hergrapefruit box was at the end of the bed, andEleanor knew before she reached for it that itwould be light as air. Empty. The lid was rippedalmost in half, and someone had written on it in
513/593
bold black marker â with one of Eleanorâsmarkers.
do you think you can make a fool of me?this is my house do you think you can horearound my neighborhood right under mynose and iâm not going to find out is thatwhat you think? i know what you are and itsoverâ
Eleanor stared at the lid and struggled to makethe letters into words â but she couldnât get pastthe familiar spill of lowercase letters.
Somewhere in the house her mother was cry-ing like she was never going to stop.
514/593
CHAPTER 47
Eleanor
Eleanor considered her options.1.
CHAPTER 48
Eleanor
do i make you wet?She pulled back the soiled blanket and set the
cat on the clean sheet underneath. Then sheclimbed from the top bunk to the bottom. Herbookbag was sitting by the door. Eleanor un-zipped it without getting off the bed and tookParkâs photo out of the side pocket. Then she wasout the window and on the porch and runningdown the street faster than sheâd ever run in gymclass.
She didnât slow down until she was on thenext block, and then only because she didnâtknow where to go. She was almost to Parkâshouse â she couldnât go to Parkâs house.
pop that cherry
âHey, Red.âEleanor ignored the girlâs voice. She looked
back at the street. What if somebody had heardher leave the house? What if Richie came afterher? She stepped off the sidewalk into someoneâsyard. Behind a tree.
âHey. Eleanor.âEleanor looked around. She was standing in
front of Steveâs house. The garage door wasmostly closed, propped open with a baseball bat.Eleanor could see someone moving inside, andTina was walking down the driveway, holding abeer.
âHey,â Tina hissed. She looked as disgustedwith Eleanor as ever. Eleanor thought about run-ning again, but her legs felt weak.
âYour stepdadâs been looking for you,â Tinasaid. âHeâs been driving around the neighborhoodall goddamn night.â
âWhat did you tell him?â Eleanor said. DidTina do this? Is that how he knew?
517/593
âI asked him if his dick was bigger than histruck,â Tina said. âI didnât tell him anything.â
âDid you tell him about Park?âTina narrowed her eyes. Then shook her
head. âBut somebodyâs going to.âsuck me offEleanor looked back at the street. She had to
hide. She had to get away from him.âWhatâs wrong with you anyway?â Tina
asked.âNothing.â A pair of headlights stopped at the
end of the block. Eleanor put her arms over herhead.
âCome on,â Tina said, in a voice Eleanor hadnever heard before â concerned. âYou just needto stay out of his way until he cools off.â
Eleanor followed Tina up the driveway,crouching to get into the hazy, dark garage.
âIs that Big Red?â Steve was sitting on acouch. Mikey was there, too, on the floor, withone of the girls from the bus. There was hessian
518/593
music, Black Sabbath, coming from a car up onblocks in the middle of the garage.
âSit down,â Tina said, pointing to the otherend of the couch.
âYouâre in trouble, Big Red,â Steve said.âYour daddyâs looking for you.â Steve was grin-ning from ear to ear. His mouth was bigger than alionâs.
âItâs her stepdad,â Tina said.âStepdad,â Steve shouted, throwing a beer can
across the garage. âYour fucking stepdad? Doyou want me to kill him for you? Iâm gonna killTinaâs anyway. I could get them both in the sameday. Buy one, get one â¦â He giggled. âBuy one,get one ⦠free.â
Tina opened a beer and shoved it into Elean-orâs lap. Eleanor took it, just to have somethingto hold. âDrink up,â Tina said.
Eleanor took a sip obediently. It tasted sharpand yellow.
519/593
âWe should play quarters,â Steve slurred.âHey, Red, do you have any quarters?â Eleanorshook her head.
Tina perched next to him on the arm of thecouch and lit a cigarette. âWe had quarters,â shesaid. âWe spent them on beer, remember?â
âThose werenât quarters,â Steve said. âThatwas a ten.â
Tina closed her eyes and blew smoke at theceiling.
Eleanor closed her eyes, too. She tried tothink about what she should do next, but nothingcame to her. The music on the car radio switchedfrom Sabbath to ACDC to Zeppelin. Steve sangalong; his voice was surprisingly light. âHang-man, hangman, turn your head a while â¦â
Eleanor listened to Steve sing song after songover the wet hammer of her heartbeat. The beercan went warm in her hand.
i know your a slut you smell like cumShe stood up. âIâve got to get out of here.â
520/593
âGod,â Tina said, ârelax. He wonât find youhere. Heâs probably already at the Rail drinking itoff.â
âNo,â Eleanor said. âHeâs going to kill me.âIt was true, she realized, even if it wasnât.Tinaâs face was hard. âSo, where you gonna
go?ââAway ⦠I have to tell Park.â
Park
Park couldnât sleep.That night, before theyâd climbed back into
the front seat of the Impala, heâd taken off all ofEleanorâs layers and even unpinned her bra âthen laid her down on the blue upholstery. Sheâdlooked like a vision there, a mermaid. Cool whitein the darkness, the freckles gathered on hershoulders and cheeks like cream rising to the top.
The sight of her. She still glowed on the in-side of his eyelids.
521/593
It was going to be constant torture now thathe knew what she was like under her clothes âand there wasnât a next time in their near future.Tonight was another fluke, a lucky break, a giftâ¦
âPark,â someone said.Park sat up in bed and looked around dumbly.âPark.â There was a knock at the window,
and he scrambled over to it, pulling back thecurtain.
It was Steve. Right behind the glass, grinninglike a maniac. He must be hanging from the win-dow ledge. Steveâs face disappeared, and Parkheard him fall heavily onto the ground. That as-shole. Parkâs mom was going to hear him.
Park opened the window quickly and leanedout. He was going to tell Steve to go away, butthen he saw Eleanor standing in the shadow ofSteveâs house with Tina.
Were they holding her hostage?Was she holding a beer?
522/593
Eleanor
As soon as Park saw her, he climbed out the win-dow and hung four feet from the ground â he wasgoing to break his ankles. Eleanor felt a sob catchin her throat.
He landed in a crouch like Spider-Man andran toward her. She dropped the beer on thegrass.
âJesus,â Tina said. âYouâre welcome. Thatwas the last beer.â
âHey, Park, did I scare you?â Steve asked.âDid you think I was Freddy Krueger? You thinkyou was gonna get away from me?â
Park got to Eleanor and took her arms.âWhatâs wrong?â he asked. âWhatâs going on?â
She started to cry. Like, majorly cry. She feltlike herself again as soon as he touched her, andit was horrible.
âAre you bleeding?â Park asked, taking herhand.
âCar,â Tina whispered.
523/593
Eleanor pulled Park against the garage untilthe headlights had passed. âWhatâs going on?â heasked again.
âWe should get back to the garage,â Tina said.
Park
He hadnât been in Steveâs garage since gradeschool. They used to play foosball in here. Nowthere was the Camaro up on blocks and an oldcouch pushed against the wall.
Steve sat at one end of the couch and imme-diately lit a joint. He held it out to Park, but Parkshook his head. The garage already smelled like athousand joints had been smoked in here, thenput out in a thousand beers. The Camaro wasrocking a little bit and Steve kicked the door.âSettle down, Mikey, youâre gonna knock itover.â
Park couldnât even imagine a turn of eventsthat would have led Eleanor here â but sheâdpractically dragged him into the garage, and now
524/593
she was huddled against him. Park still thoughtmaybe theyâd kidnapped her. Was he supposed topay ransom?
âTalk to me,â he said to the top of Eleanorâshead. âWhatâs going on?â
âHer stepdad is looking for her,â Tina said.Tina was sitting on the arm of the couch with herlegs in Steveâs lap. She took the joint from him.
âIs that true?â Park asked Eleanor. She nod-ded into his chest. She wouldnât let him pull farenough away that he could look at her.
âFucking stepdads,â Steve said. âMotherfuck-ers, all of them.â He burst into laughter. âOh,fuck, Mikey, did you hear that?â He kicked theCamaro again. âMikey?â
âI have to leave,â Eleanor whispered.Thank God. Park backed away from her and
took her hand. âHey, Steve, weâre going back tomy house.â
âBe careful, man, heâs been driving around inthat shit-colored Micro Machine â¦â
525/593
Park bent to clear the garage door. Eleanorstopped behind him. âThank you,â she said â hewould swear that she was talking to Tina.
This night couldnât get any weirder.
He led Eleanor through his backyard, then aroundthe back of his grandparentsâ house to the drive-way, past the spot by the garage where they likedto kiss goodbye.
When they got to the RV, Park reached upand opened the screen door. âGo on,â he said.âItâs always unlocked.â
He and Josh used to play in here. It was like alittle house, with a bed at one end and a kitchenat the other. There was even a miniature stoveand refrigerator. It had been a while since Parkhad been inside the RV â he couldnât stand upnow without hitting his head on the ceiling.
There was a checkerboard-sized table againstthe wall with two seats. Park sat on one side andsat Eleanor down across from him. He reachedfor her hands â her right palm was streaked withblood, but she didnât seem to be in pain.
526/593
âEleanor â¦â he said. âWhatâs going on?â Hewas pleading.
âI have to leave,â she said. She was lookingacross the table like sheâd just seen a ghost. Likeshe was one.
âWhy?â he said. âIs this about tonight?â InParkâs head, it felt like everything must be abouttonight. Like nothing that good and this badcould happen on the same night unless they wererelated. Whatever this was.
âNo,â Eleanor said, rubbing her eyes. âNo. Itâsnot about us. I mean â¦â She looked out the littlewindow.
âWhy is your stepdad looking for you?ââBecause he knows, because I ran away.ââWhy?ââBecause he knows.â Her voice caught. âBe-
cause itâs him.ââWhat?ââOh God, I shouldnât have come here,â she
said. âIâm just making it worse. Iâm sorry.â
527/593
Park wanted to shake her, to shake through toher â she wasnât making any sense. Two hoursago, everything had been perfect between them,and now ⦠Park had to get back to his house.His mom was still awake, and his dad was goingto be home any minute.
He leaned over the table and took Eleanor bythe shoulders.
âCould we just start over?â he whispered.âPlease? I donât know what youâre talking about.â
Eleanor closed her eyes and nodded wearily.She started over.She told him everything.And Parkâs hands started shaking before she
was halfway through.
âMaybe he wonât hurt you,â he said, hoping itwas true, âmaybe heâs just trying to scare you.Here â¦â He pulled his hand inside his sleeve andtried to wipe Eleanorâs face.
âNo,â she said. âYou donât know, you donâtsee how ⦠how he looks at me.â
528/593
CHAPTER 49
Eleanor
How he looks at me.Like heâs biding his time.Not like he wants me. Like heâll get around to
me. When thereâs nothing and no one else left todestroy.
How he waits up for me.Keeps track of me.How heâs always there. When Iâm eating.
When Iâm reading. When Iâm brushing my hair.You donât see.Because I pretend not to.
CHAPTER 50
Park
Eleanor pushed her curls out of her face one byone, like she was gathering her wits by hand. âIhave to go,â she said.
She was making more sense now, and moreeye contact, but Park still felt like someone hadturned the world upside down and was shaking it.
âYou could talk to your mom tomorrow,â hesaid. âEverything might look different in themorning.â
âYou saw what he wrote on my books,â shesaid evenly. âWould you want me to stay there?â
âI ⦠I just donât want you to leave,â he said.âWhere would you go? To your dadâs house?â
âNo, he doesnât want me.ââBut if you explained â¦â
âHe doesnât want me.ââThen ⦠where?ââI donât know.â She took a deep breath and
squared her shoulders. âMy uncle said I couldspend the summer with him. Maybe heâll let mecome up to St Paul early.â
âSt Paul, Minnesota.âShe nodded.âBut â¦â Park looked in Eleanorâs eyes, and
her hands fell to the table.âI know,â she sobbed, slumping forward. âI
know â¦âThere was no room to sit at the table next to
her, so he dropped to his knees and pulled heronto the dusty linoleum floor.
Eleanor
âWhen are you leaving?â he asked. He pushed herhair out of her face and held it behind her head.
âTonight,â she said, âI canât go home.â
531/593
âHow are you going to get there? Have youcalled your uncle?â
âNo. I donât know. I thought Iâd take the bus.âShe was going to hitchhike.She figured she could walk as far as the Inter-
state, then sheâd stick out her thumb for stationwagons and minivans. Family cars. If she hadnâtbeen raped or murdered â or sold into whiteslavery â by Des Moines, sheâd call her unclecollect. Heâd come to get her, even if it was justto bring her home.
âYou canât take the bus by yourself,â Parksaid.
âI donât have a better plan.ââIâll drive you,â he said.âTo the bus station?ââTo Minnesota.ââPark, no, your parents will never let you.ââSo I wonât ask.ââBut your dad will kill you.ââNo,â he said, âheâll ground me.ââFor life.â
532/593
âDo you think I even care about that rightnow?â He held her face in his hands. âDo youthink I care about anything but you?â
533/593
CHAPTER 51
Eleanor
Park said heâd come back after his dad got homeand his parents were both asleep.
âIt might be a while. Donât turn on the lightor anything, okay?â
âDuh.ââAnd watch for the Impala.ââOkay.âHe looked more serious than sheâd seen him
since the day he kicked Steveâs ass. Or since herfirst day on the bus, when heâd ordered her to sitdown. That was still the only time sheâd heardhim use the F-word.
He leaned into the RV and touched her chin.âPlease be careful,â she said.And then he was gone.
Eleanor sat back down at the table. She couldsee Parkâs driveway from there, through the lacecurtains. She felt tired suddenly. She just wantedto lay her head down. It was already after mid-night; it could be hours before Park came back â¦
Maybe she should feel bad about involvinghim in all this, but she didnât. He was right, theworst thing that would happen to him (barringsome terrible accident) was that heâd be groun-ded. And being grounded at his house was likewinning the Price is Right showcase compared towhat would happen if Eleanor got caught.
Should she have left a note?Would her mom call the police? (Was her
mom okay? Were they all okay? Eleanor shouldhave checked to see if the little kids werebreathing.)
Her uncle probably wouldnât even let Eleanorstay once he found out sheâd run away â¦
God, whenever she started to think this planthrough, it all fell apart. But it was already toolate to turn back. It felt like the most important
535/593
thing now was to run, the most important place tobe was away.
Sheâd get away, and then sheâd figure outwhat to do next.
Or maybe she wouldnât â¦Maybe sheâd get away, and then sheâd just
stop.Eleanor had never thought about killing her-
self â ever â but she thought a lot about stopping.Just running until she couldnât run anymore.Jumping from something so high that sheâd neverhit the bottom.
Was Richie out looking for her now?Maisie and Ben would tell him about Park, if
they hadnât already. Not because they liked Rich-ie, though sometimes it still seemed like they did.Because he had them on leashes. Like the firstday Eleanor came to the house, when Maisie wassitting on Richieâs lap â¦
Fuck. Just ⦠fuck.She should go back for Maisie.
536/593
She should go back for all of them â sheshould find a way to fit them in her pockets â butshe should definitely go back for Maisie. Maisiewould run away with Eleanor. She wouldnâtthink twice â¦
And then Uncle Geoff would send them bothright home.
Her mom would definitely call the police ifshe woke up and Maisie was gone. BringingMaisie would ruin everything even worse than itwas already ruined.
If Eleanor were the hero of some book, likeThe Boxcar Children or something, sheâd try. Ifshe were Dicey Tillerman, sheâd find a way.
Sheâd be brave and noble, and sheâd find away.
But she wasnât. Eleanor wasnât any of thosethings. She was just trying to get through thenight.
Park
537/593
Park walked quietly into his house through theback door. Nobody in his family ever lockedanything.
The TV was still on in his parentsâ bedroom.He went straight to the bathroom and into theshower. He was pretty sure he smelled like everysingle thing that could get him in trouble.
âPark?â his mom called when he walked outof the bathroom.
âHere,â he said. âJust going to bed.âHe buried his dirty clothes at the bottom of
the hamper and dug all his leftover birthday andChristmas money out of his sock drawer. Sixtydollars. That should be enough for gas ⦠prob-ably, he didnât really know.
If they could just get to St Paul, Eleanorâsuncle would help them figure it out. She wasnâtsure her uncle would let her stay, but she said hewas a decent guy, âand his wife was in the PeaceCorps.â
Park had already written his parents a note:
Mom and Dad,
538/593
I had to help Eleanor. Iâll call you to-morrow, and Iâll be back in a day or two. Iknow Iâm in huge trouble, but this was anemergency, and I had to help.
Park
His mom always kept her keys in the same placeâ on a little key-shaped plaque in the entrywaythat said âkeys.â
Park was going to take her keys, then sneakback out the kitchen door, the door farthest fromhis parentsâ room.
His dad got home around 1:30. Park listenedto him move around the kitchen, then the bath-room. He heard the door to his parentsâ roomopen, he heard the TV.
Park lay on his bed and closed his eyes.(There was no chance heâd fall asleep.) The pic-ture of Eleanor was still glowing on the inside ofhis eyelids.
So beautiful. So peaceful ⦠No, that wasnâtquite right, not peaceful, more like ⦠at peace.
539/593
Like she was more comfortable out of her shirtthan in it. Like she was happy inside out.
When he opened his eyes, he saw her the wayheâd left her in the RV â tense and resigned, sofar gone that light wouldnât even catch in hereyes.
So far gone, she wasnât even thinking abouthim anymore.
Park waited until it was quiet. Then he waited an-other twenty minutes. Then he grabbed his back-pack and went through the motions heâd plannedin his head.
He stopped at the kitchen door. His dad hadleft his new hunting rifle out on the table ⦠Hewas probably going to clean it tomorrow morn-ing. For a minute, Park thought about taking thegun â but he couldnât think of when heâd use it.Itâs not like they were going to run into Richie onthe way out of town. Hopefully.
Park opened the door and was about to stepout when his dadâs voice stopped him.
âPark?â
540/593
He could have run for it, but his dad probablywouldâve caught him. His dad was always brag-ging about being in the best shape of his life.
âWhere do you think youâre going?â his dadwhispered.
âI ⦠I have to help Eleanor.ââWhat does Eleanor need help with at two in
the morning?ââSheâs running away.ââAnd youâre going with her?ââNo. I was just going to give her a ride to her
uncleâs house.ââWhere does her uncle live?ââMinnesota.ââJesus F. Christ, Park,â his dad said in his nor-
mal voice, âare you serious?ââDad.â Park stepped toward him, pleading.
âShe has to go. Itâs her stepdad. Heâs â¦ââDid he touch her? Because if he touched her,
weâre calling the police.ââHe writes her these notes.ââWhat kind of notes?â
541/593
Park rubbed his forehead. He didnât like tothink about the notes. âSick ones.â
âDid she talk to her mom?ââHer momâs ⦠not in very good shape. I
think he hurts her.ââThat little fucker â¦â His dad looked down at
the gun, then looked back at Park, rubbing hischin. âSo youâre going to drive Eleanor to heruncleâs house. Will he take her in?â
âShe thinks so.ââI gotta tell you, Park, this doesnât sound like
much of a plan.ââI know.âHis dad sighed and scratched the back of his
neck. âBut I canât think of a better one.âParkâs head jerked up.âCall me when you get there,â his dad said
quietly. âItâs a straight shot up from Des Moinesâ do you have a map?â
âI thought Iâd get one at a gas station.â
542/593
âIf you get tired, pull into a rest stop. Anddonât talk to anybody unless you have to. Do youhave any money?â
âSixty dollars.ââHere â¦â His dad walked over to the cookie
jar and pulled out a bunch of twenties. âIf thisdoesnât work, with her uncle, donât take Eleanorhome. Bring her back here, and weâll figure outwhat to do next.â
âOkay ⦠Thanks, Dad.ââDonât thank me yet. Iâve got one condition.âNo more eyeliner, Park thought.âYouâre taking the truck,â his dad said.
His dad stood on the front steps with his armsfolded. Of course he had to watch. Like he wasumpiring a goddamn taekwando bout.
Park closed his eyes. Eleanor was still there.Eleanor.
He started the engine and shifted smoothlyinto reverse, rolled out of the driveway, shiftedinto first, then pulled forward without a sputter.
Because he knew how to drive a stick. Jesus.
543/593
CHAPTER 52
Park
âOkay?âShe nodded and climbed in.âStay down,â he said.
The first couple hours were a blur.Park wasnât used to driving the truck, and it
died a few times at red lights. Then he got on theInterstate heading west instead of east, and ittook twenty minutes to turn around again.
Eleanor didnât say anything. Just stared aheadand held onto her seat belt with both hands. Heput his hand on her leg, and it was like she didnâtnotice it was there.
They got off the Interstate again somewherein Iowa to get gas and a map. Park went in. He
bought Eleanor a Coke and a sandwich, andwhen he got back to the truck she was slumpedagainst the passenger door, asleep.
Good, he tried to tell himself. Sheâsexhausted.
He climbed up behind the wheel and took afew rough breaths, then he slammed the sand-wich onto the dash. How could she be asleep?
If everything went right tonight, Park wouldbe driving home tomorrow morning by himself.Heâd probably be allowed to drive now wheneverhe wanted, but there was nowhere he wanted togo without Eleanor.
How could she sleep through their last hourstogether?
How could she sleep sitting up like that â¦Her hair was down and wild, wine-red even
in this light, and her mouth was slightly open.Strawberry girl. He tried again to remember whatheâd thought the first time he saw her. He tried toremember how this happened â how she went
545/593
from someone heâd never met to the only onewho mattered.
And he wondered ⦠What would happen ifhe didnât take her to her uncleâs house? Whatwould happen if he kept driving?
Why couldnât this have waited?If Eleanorâs life had caved in next year, or the
year after, she could have run to him. Not from,not away.
Jesus. Why couldnât she just wake up?Park stayed awake for another hour or so,
fueled by Coke and hurt feelings. Then the wreckof the night caught up with him. There wasnât arest stop around, so he pulled off on a countyroad, onto the gravel that passed as a shoulder.
He unbuckled his seat belt, unbuckled Elean-orâs, then pulled her into him, laying his head onhers. She still smelled like last night. Like sweatand sweetness and the Impala. He cried into herhair until he fell asleep.
Eleanor
546/593
She woke up in Parkâs arms. It caught her bysurprise.
She wouldâve thought it was a dream, but herdreams were always terrifying. (With Nazis andbabies crying and teeth rotting out of her mouth.)Eleanor had never dreamed anything as nice asthis, as nice as Park, sleepy-soft and warm â¦Warm through. Someday, she thought, some-bodyâs going to wake up to this every morning.
Parkâs face, asleep, was a brand new kind ofbeautiful. Sunshine-trapped-in-amber skin. Full,flat mouth. Strong, arched cheekbones. (Eleanordidnât even have cheekbones.)
He caught her by surprise, and before shecould help herself, her heart was breaking forhim. Like it didnât have anything better to breakover â¦
Maybe it didnât.The sun was just below the horizon, and the
inside of the truck was bluey pink. Eleanor kissedParkâs new face â just under his eye, not quite onhis nose. He stirred, and she felt every part of
547/593
him shift against her. She ran the end of her nosealong his brow and kissed his lashes.
His eyelids fluttered. (Only eyelids do that.And butterflies.) And his arms came to lifearound her. âEleanor â¦â he sighed.
She held his beautiful face and kissed himlike it was the end of the world.
Park
She wouldnât be on the bus with him.She wouldnât roll her eyes at him in English.She wouldnât pick a fight with him just be-
cause she was bored.She wouldnât cry in his bedroom about the
things he couldnât fix for her.The whole sky was the color of her skin.
Eleanor
Thereâs only one of him, she thought, and heâsright here.
548/593
He knows Iâll like a song before Iâve heard it.He laughs before I even get to the punchline.Thereâs a place on his chest, just below histhroat, that makes me want to let him open doorsfor me.
Thereâs only one of him.
Park
His parents never talked about how they met, butwhen Park was younger, he used to try to ima-gine it.
He loved how much they loved each other. Itwas the thing he thought about when he woke upscared in the middle of the night. Not that theyloved him â they were his parents, they had tolove him. That they loved each other. They didnâthave to do that.
None of his friendâs parents were still togeth-er, and in every case that seemed like the numberone thing that had gone wrong with his friendsâlives.
549/593
But Parkâs parents loved each other. Theykissed each other on the mouth, no matter whowas watching.
What are the chances youâd ever meetsomeone like that? he wondered. Someone youcould love forever, someone who would foreverlove you back? And what did you do when thatperson was born half a world away?
The math seemed impossible. How did hisparents get so lucky?
They couldnât have felt lucky at the time. Hisdadâs brother had just died in Vietnam; thatâswhy they sent his dad to Korea. And when hisparents got married, his mom had to leaveeverything and everyone she loved behind.
Park wondered if his dad saw his mom in thestreet or from the road or working in a restaurant.He wondered how they both knew â¦
This kiss had to last Park forever.It had to get him home.He needed to remember it when he woke up
scared in the middle of the night.
550/593
Eleanor
The first time heâd held her hand, it felt so goodthat it crowded out all the bad things. It felt betterthan anything had ever hurt.
Park
Eleanorâs hair caught fire at dawn. Her eyes weredark and shining, and his arms were sure of her.
The first time heâd touched her hand, heâdknown.
Eleanor
Thereâs no shame with Park. Nothing is dirty.Because Park is the sun, and thatâs best way shecould think to explain it.
Park
âEleanor, no, we have to stop.â
551/593
âNo â¦ââWe canât do this â¦ââNo. Donât stop, Park.ââI donât even know how to ⦠I donât have
anything.ââIt doesnât matter.ââBut I donât want you to get â¦ââI donât care.ââI care. Eleanor â¦ââItâs our last chance.ââNo. No, I canât ⦠I, no, I need to believe
that it isnât our last chance ⦠Eleanor? Can youhear me? I need you to believe it, too.â
552/593
CHAPTER 53
Park
Eleanor got out of the truck, and Park wanderedinto the cornfield to pee. (Which was embarrass-ing, but less embarrassing than pissing his pants.)
When he came back, she was sitting on thehood of the truck. She looked beautiful, fierce,leaning forward like a figurehead.
He climbed up and sat next to her.âHey,â he said.âHey.âHe pushed his shoulder up against hers and
nearly wept with relief when she laid her headagainst him. Weeping again today seemed whollyinevitable.
âDo you really believe that?â she asked.âWhat?â
âThat ⦠weâll have other chances? That wehave any chance at all?â
âYes.ââNo matter what happens,â she said force-
fully, âIâm not coming home.ââI know.âShe was quiet.âNo matter what happens,â Park said, âI love
you.âShe put her arms around his waist, and he
hugged her shoulders.âI just canât believe that life would give us to
each other,â he said, âand then take it back.ââI can,â she said. âLifeâs a bastard.âHe held her tighter, and pushed his face into
her neck.âBut itâs up to us â¦â he said softly. âItâs up to
us not to lose this.â
Eleanor
554/593
She sat right next to him for the rest of the trip âeven though there wasnât a seat belt, and she hadto sit with the stick shift between her legs. Shefigured it was still lots safer than riding in theback of Richieâs Isuzu.
They stopped at another truck stop and Parkbought her Cherry Coke and beef jerky. Hecalled his parents collect â she still couldnât be-lieve they were okay with this.
âMy dadâs okay,â he said. âI think my momâsfreaking out.â
âHave they heard from my mom or â¦anybody?â
âNo. Or, at least, they didnât mention it.âPark asked her if she wanted to call her uncle.
She didnât.âI smell like Steveâs garage,â she said. âMy
uncleâs going to think Iâm a drug dealer.âPark laughed. âI think you spilled beer on
your shirt. Maybe heâll just think youâre analcoholic.â
555/593
She looked down at her shirt. There was asmear of blood from when sheâd cut her hand onher bed â and something crusty on the shoulder,probably snot from all that crying.
âHere,â Park said. He was taking off hissweatshirt. Then his T-shirt. He handed the T-shirt to her. It was green and said âPrefabSprout.â
âI canât take this,â she said, watching him pullhis sweatshirt back on over his bare chest. âItâsnew.â Plus it probably wouldnât fit.
âYou can give it back later.ââClose your eyes,â she said.âOf course,â Park said softly. He looked
away.There was no one else in the parking lot.
Eleanor slouched down and put Parkâs T-shirt onunderneath her own, then pulled the dirty shirtoff. Thatâs how she changed in gym class. Hisshirt was about as tight as her gymsuit ⦠but itsmelled clean, like Park.
âOkay,â she said.
556/593
He looked back at her, and his smile changed.âKeep it.â
When they got to Minneapolis, Park stopped atanother gas station to ask for directions.
âIs it easy?â she asked him when he got backin the truck.
âLike Sunday morning,â he said. âWeârereally close.â
557/593
CHAPTER 54
Park
He was more nervous about his driving once theygot into the city. Driving in St Paul was nothinglike driving in Omaha.
Eleanor was reading the map for him, butsheâd never read a map outside of class before âand between the two of them they kept makingwrong turns.
âIâm sorry,â Eleanor kept saying.âItâs okay,â Park said, glad she was sitting
right next to him. âIâm not in any hurry.âShe pressed her hand into the top of his leg.âIâve been thinking â¦â she said.âYeah?ââI donât want you to come inside when we get
there.â
âYou mean you want to talk to them byyourself?â
âNo ⦠Well, yeah. But I mean ⦠I donâtwant you to wait for me.â
He tried to look down at her, but he wasafraid heâd miss his turn again.
âWhat?â he said. âNo. What if they donât wantyou to stay?â
âThen they can figure out how to get mehome â Iâll be their problem. Maybe thatâll giveme more time to talk to them about everything.â
âBut â¦â Iâm not ready for you to stop beingmy problem.
âIt makes more sense, Park. If you leavesoon, you can still get home by dark.â
âBut if I leave soon â¦â His voice dropped. âIleave soon.â
âWe have to say goodbye anyway,â she said.âDoes it matter if itâs now or a few hours fromnow or tomorrow morning?â
âAre you kidding?â He looked down at her,hoping heâd miss his turn. âYes.â
559/593
Eleanor
âIt just makes more sense,â she said. And thenshe bit her lip. The only way she was going to getthrough any of this was by force of will.
The houses were starting to look familiar âbig gray and white clapboard houses set far backon their lawns. Eleanorâs whole family had comeup here for Easter the year after her dad left. Heruncle and his wife were atheists, but it was still areally fun trip.
They didnât have kids of their own â probablyby choice, Eleanor thought. Probably becausethey knew cute kids grow up into ugly, problem-atic teenagers.
But Uncle Geoff had invited her here.He wanted her to come, at least for a few
months. Maybe she didnât have to tell himeverything right away, maybe heâd just think shewas early.
âIs that it?â Park asked.He stopped in front of a gray-blue house with
a willow tree in the front yard.
560/593
âYeah,â she said. She recognized the house.She recognized her uncleâs Volvo in thedriveway.
Park stepped on the gas.âWhere are you going?ââJust ⦠around the block,â he said.
Park
He drove around the block. For all the good it didhim. Then he parked a few houses down from heruncleâs, so they could see the house from the car.Eleanor couldnât look away from it.
Eleanor
She had to say goodbye to him. Now. And shedidnât know how.
Park
âYou remember my phone number right?â
561/593
â867-5309.ââSeriously, Eleanor.ââSeriously, Park. Iâm never going to forget
your phone number.ââCall me as soon as you can, okay? Tonight.
Collect. And give me your uncleâs number. Or, ifhe doesnât want you to call, send the number tome in a letter â in one of the many, many lettersyouâre going to write me.â
âHe might send me home.ââNo.â Park let go of the gearshift and took her
hand. âYouâre not going back there. If your unclesends you home, come to my house. My parentswill help us figure it out. My dad already saidthat they would.â
Eleanorâs head fell forward.âHeâs not going to send you home,â Park said.
âHeâs going to help â¦â She nodded deliberatelyat the floor. âAnd heâs going to let you accept fre-quent, private, long-distance phone calls â¦â
She was still.
562/593
âHey,â Park said, trying to lift up her chin.âEleanor.â
Eleanor
Stupid Asian kid.Stupid, beautiful Asian kid.Thank God she couldnât make her mouth
work right now, because if she could thereâd beno end to the melodramatic garbage sheâd say tohim.
She was pretty sure sheâd thank him for sav-ing her life. Not just yesterday, but, like, practic-ally every day since theyâd met. Which made herfeel like the dumbest, weakest girl. If you canâtsave your own life, is it even worth saving?
Thereâs no such thing as handsome princes,she told herself.
Thereâs no such thing as happily ever after.She looked up at Park. Into his golden green
eyes.
563/593
You saved my life, she tried to tell him. Notforever, not for good. Probably just temporarily.But you saved my life, and now Iâm yours. Theme thatâs me right now is yours. Always.
Park
âI donât know how to say goodbye to you,â shesaid.
He smoothed her hair off her face. Heâd nev-er seen her so fair. âThen donât.â
âBut I have to go â¦ââSo go,â he said, with his hands on her
cheeks. âBut donât say goodbye. Itâs notgoodbye.â
She rolled her eyes and shook her head.âThatâs so lame.â
âSeriously? You canât cut me five minutes ofslack?â
âThatâs what people say â âItâs not goodbyeââ when theyâre too afraid to face what theyârereally feeling. Iâm not going to see you
564/593
tomorrow, Park â I donât know when Iâll see youagain. That deserves more than âItâs notgoodbye.ââ
âIâm not afraid to face what Iâm feeling,â hesaid.
âNot you,â she said, her voice breaking. âMe.ââYou,â he said, putting his arms around her
and promising himself that it wouldnât be the lasttime, âare the bravest person I know.â
She shook her head again, like she was tryingto shake off the tears.
âJust kiss me goodbye,â she whispered.Only for today, he thought. Not ever.
Eleanor
You think that holding someone hard will bringthem closer. You think that you can hold them sohard that youâll still feel them, embossed on you,when you pull away.
Every time Eleanor pulled away from Park,she felt the gasping loss of him.
565/593
When she finally got out of the truck, it wasbecause she didnât think she could stand touchingand untouching him again. The next time sheripped herself away, sheâd lose some skin.
Park started to get out with her, but shestopped him.
âNo,â she said. âStay.â She looked upanxiously at her uncleâs house.
âItâs going to be okay,â Park said.She nodded. âRight.ââBecause I love you.âShe laughed. âIs that why?ââIt is, actually.ââGoodbye,â she said. âGoodbye, Park.ââGoodbye, Eleanor. You know, until tonight.
When youâre going to call me.ââWhat if theyâre not home? God, that would
be anti-climactic.ââThat would be great.ââDork,â she whispered with a leftover smile
on her face. She stepped back and closed thedoor.
566/593
âI love you,â he mouthed. Maybe he was say-ing it out loud. She couldnât hear him anymore.
567/593
CHAPTER 55
Park
He didnât ride the bus anymore. He didnât haveto. His mom gave him the Impala when his dadbought her a new Taurus â¦
He didnât ride the bus anymore because heâdhave the whole seat to himself.
Not that the Impala wasnât just as ruined withmemories. Some mornings, if Park got to schoolearly, he sat in the parking lot with his head onthe steering wheel and let whatever was left ofEleanor wash over him until he ran out of air.Not that school was any better.
She wasnât at her locker. Or in class. MrStessman said it was pointless to read Macbethout loud without Eleanor. âFie, my Lord, fie,â helamented.
She didnât stay for dinner. She didnât leanagainst him when he watched TV.
Park spent most nights lying on his bed be-cause it was the only place sheâd never been.
He lay on his bed and never turned on thestereo.
Eleanor
She didnât ride the bus anymore. She rode toschool with her uncle. He made her go, eventhough there were only four weeks left, andeverybody was already studying for finals.
There werenât any Asian kids at her newschool. There werenât even any black kids.
When her uncle went down to Omaha, hesaid she didnât have to go. He was gone threedays, and when he came back, he brought theblack trash bag from her bedroom closet. Eleanoralready had new clothes. And a new bookcaseand a boombox. And a six-pack of blank cassettetapes.
569/593
Park
Eleanor didnât call that first night.She hadnât said that she would, now that he
thought about it. She hadnât said that sheâd writeeither, but Park thought that went unsaid. Heâdthought that was a given.
After Eleanor got out of the truck, Park hadwaited in front of her uncleâs house.
He was supposed to drive away as soon as thedoor opened, as soon as it was clear that some-body was home. But he couldnât just leave herlike that.
He watched the woman who came to the doorgive Eleanor a big hug, and then he watched thedoor close behind them. And then he waited, justin case Eleanor changed her mind. Just in caseshe decided after all that he should come in.
The door stayed closed. Park remembered hispromise and drove away. The sooner I get home,he thought, the sooner Iâll hear from her again.
570/593
He sent Eleanor a postcard from the firsttruck stop. âWelcome to Minnesota, Land of10,000 Lakes.â
When he got home, his mom ran to the door tohug him.
âAll right?â his dad asked.âYeah,â Park said.âHow was the truck?ââFine.âHis dad went outside to make sure.âYou,â his mom said, âI was so worried about
you.ââIâm fine, Mom, just tired.ââHowâs Eleanor?â she asked. âShe okay?ââI think so, has she called?ââNo. Nobody called.âAs soon as his mom would let go of him,
Park went to his room and wrote Eleanor a letter.
Eleanor
571/593
When Aunt Susan opened the door, Eleanor wasalready crying.
âEleanor,â Aunt Susan kept saying. âOh mygoodness, Eleanor. What are you doing here?â
Eleanor tried to tell her that everything wasokay. Which wasnât true â she wouldnât be thereif everything was okay. But nobody was dead.âNobodyâs dead,â she said.
âOh my God. Geoffrey!â Aunt Susan called.âWait here, sweetheart. Geoff â¦â
Left alone, Eleanor realized that sheshouldnât have told Park to leave right away.
She wasnât ready for him to leave.She opened the front door and ran out to the
street. Park was already gone â she looked bothways for him.
When she turned around, her aunt and unclewere standing on the front porch watching her.
Phone calls. Peppermint tea. Her aunt and uncletalking in the kitchen long after she went to bed.
âSabrina â¦ââFive of them.â
572/593
âWeâve got to get them out of there, Geoffreyâ¦â
âWhat if she isnât telling the truth?âEleanor took Parkâs photo out of her back
pocket and smoothed it out on the bedspread. Itdidnât look like him. October was already a life-time away. And this afternoon was another life-time. The world was spinning so fast, she didnâtknow where she stood anymore.
Her aunt had lent her some pajamas â theywore about the same size â but Eleanor putParkâs shirt back on as soon as she got out of theshower.
It smelled like him. Like his house, like pot-pourri. Like soap, like boy, like happiness.
She fell forward onto the bed, holding thehole in her stomach.
No one would ever believe her.
She wrote her mom a letter.She said everything sheâd wanted to say in
the last six months.She said she was sorry.
573/593
She begged her to think of Ben and Mouse âand Maisie.
She threatened to call the police.Her Aunt Susan gave her a stamp. âTheyâre in
the junk drawer, Eleanor, take as many as youneed.â
Park
When he got sick of his bedroom, when therewas nothing left in his life that smelled likevanilla â Park walked by Eleanorâs house.
Sometimes the truck was there, sometimes itwasnât, sometimes the Rottweiler was asleep onthe porch. But the broken toys were gone, andthere were never any strawberry-blond kids play-ing in the yard.
Josh said that Eleanorâs little brother hadstopped coming to school. âEverybody saystheyâre gone. The whole family.â
574/593
âThat great news,â their mother said. âMaybethat pretty mom wake up to bad situation, youknow? Good for Eleanor.â
Park just nodded.He wondered if his letters even got to
wherever she was now.
Eleanor
There was a red rotary phone in the spare bed-room. Her bedroom. Whenever it rang, Eleanorfelt like picking it up and saying, âWhat is it,Commissioner Gordon?â
Sometimes, when she was alone in the house,she took the phone over to her bed and listened tothe dial tone.
She practiced Parkâs number, her finger slid-ing across the dial. Sometimes, after the dial tonestopped, she pretended he was whispering in herear.
âHave you ever had a boyfriend?â Dani asked.Dani was in theater camp, too. They ate lunch
575/593
together, sitting on the stage with their legsdangling in the orchestra pit.
âNo,â Eleanor said.Park wasnât a boyfriend, he was a champion.And they werenât going to break up. Or get
bored. Or drift apart. (They werenât going to be-come another stupid high school romance.)
They were just going to stop.Eleanor had decided back in his dadâs truck.
Sheâd decided in Albert Lea, Minnesota. If theywerenât going to get married â if it wasnât foreverâ it was only a matter of time.
They were just going to stop.Park was never going to love her more than
he did on the day they said goodbye.And she couldnât bear to think of him loving
her less.
Park
When he got sick of himself, Park went to her oldhouse. Sometimes the truck was there.
576/593
Sometimes it wasnât. Sometimes, Park stood atthe end of the sidewalk and hated everything thehouse stood for.
577/593
CHAPTER 56
Eleanor
Letters, postcards, packages that rattled likeloaded cassette tapes. None of them opened, noneof them read.
âDear Park,â she wrote on a clean sheet of sta-tionery. âDear Park,â she tried to explain.
But the explanations fell apart in her hands.Everything true was too hard to write â he wastoo much to lose. Everything she felt for him wastoo hot to touch.
âIâm sorry,â she wrote, then crossed it out.âItâs just â¦â she tried again.She threw the half-written letters away. She
threw the unopened envelopes in the bottomdrawer.
âDear Park,â she whispered, her foreheadhanging over the dresser, âjust stop.â
Park
His dad said Park needed a summer job to pay forgas.
Neither of them mentioned that Park neverwent anywhere. Or that heâd started putting eye-liner on with his thumb. Blacking out his owneyes.
He looked just wrecked enough to get a job atDrastic Plastic. The girl who hired him had tworows of holes in each ear.
His mom stopped bringing in the mail. Heknew it was because she hated telling him thatnothing had come for him. Park brought in themail himself now every night when he got homefrom work. Every night praying for rain.
He had an endless supply and an insatiableappetite for punk music. âI canât hear myselfthink in here,â his dad said, coming into Parkâs
579/593
room for the third night in a row to turn down thestereo.
Duh, Eleanor would have said.
Eleanor didnât start school in the fall. Not withPark anyway.
She didnât celebrate the fact that juniors donâthave to take gym. She didnât say, âUnholy union,Batman,â when Steve and Tina eloped over LaborDay.
Park had written her a letter all about it. Heâdtold her everything that happened, and everythingthat didnât, every day since sheâd left.
He kept writing her letters months after hestopped sending them. On New Yearâs Day, hewrote that he hoped sheâd get everything she everwished for. Then he tossed the letter into a boxunder his bed.
580/593
CHAPTER 57
Park
Heâd stopped trying to bring her back.She only came back when she felt like it any-
way, in dreams and lies and broken-down déjà vu.
Like, Park would be driving to work and heâdsee a girl with red hair standing on the street, andheâd swear for half an airless moment that it washer.
Or heâd wake up when it was still dark, surethat she was waiting for him outside. Sure thatshe needed him.
But he couldnât summon her. Sometimes hecouldnât even remember what she looked like,even when he was looking at her picture. (Maybeheâd looked at it too much.)
Heâd stopped trying to bring her back.So why did he keep coming here? To this
crappy little house â¦Eleanor wasnât here, she was never really
here â and sheâd been gone too long. Almost ayear now.
Park turned to walk away from the house, butthe little brown truck whipped too fast into thedriveway, jumping the curb and nearly clippinghim. Park stopped on the sidewalk and waited.The driverâs side door swung open.
Maybe, he thought. Maybe this is why Iâmhere.
Eleanorâs stepdad â Richie â leaned slowlyout of the cab. Park recognized him from the onetime heâd seen him before, when Park hadbrought Eleanor the second issue of Watchmen,and her stepdad had answered the door â¦
The final issue of Watchmen came out a fewmonths after Eleanor left. He wondered if sheâdread it, and whether she thought Ozymandias wasa villain, and what she thought Dr Manhattan
582/593
meant when he said, âNothing ever endsâ at theend. Park still wondered what Eleanor thoughtabout everything.
Her stepdad didnât see Park at first. Richiewas moving slowly, uncertainly. When he didnotice Park, he looked at him like he wasnât surehe was really there. âWho are you?â Richieshouted.
Park didnât answer. Richie turned jaggedly,jerking toward him. âWhat do you want?â Evenfrom a few feet away, he smelled sour. Like beer,like basements.
Park stood his ground.I want to kill you, he thought. And I can, he
realized. I should.Richie wasnât much bigger than Park, and he
was drunk and disoriented. Plus, he could neverwant to hurt Park as much as Park wanted to hurthim.
Unless Richie was armed, unless he got luckyâ Park could do this.
583/593
Richie shuffled closer. âWhat do you want?âhe shouted again. The force of his own voiceknocked him off balance and he tipped forward,falling thickly to the ground. Park had to stepback not to catch him.
âFuck,â Richie said, raising himself up on hisknees and holding himself not quite steady.
I want to kill you, Park thought.And I can.Someone should.Park looked down at his steel-toe Docs. Heâd
just bought them at work. (On sale, with his em-ployee discount.) He looked at Richieâs head,hanging from his neck like a leather bag.
Park hated him more than he thought it waspossible to hate someone. More than heâd everthought it was possible to feel anything â¦
Almost.He lifted his boot and kicked the ground in
front of Richieâs face. Ice and mud and drivewayslopped into the older manâs open mouth. Richiecoughed violently and banked into the ground.
584/593
Park waited for him to get up, but Richie justlay there spitting curses, and rubbing salt andgravel into his eyes.
He wasnât dead. But he wasnât getting up.Park waited.And then he walked home.
Eleanor
Letters, postcards, yellow padded packages thatrattled in her hands. None of them opened, noneof them read.
It was bad when the letters came every day. Itwas worse when they stopped.
Sometimes she laid them out on the carpetlike tarot cards, like Wonka bars, and wonderedwhether it was too late.
585/593
CHAPTER 58
Park
Eleanor didnât go to prom with him.Cat did.Cat from work. She was thin and dark, and
her eyes were as blue and flat as breath mints.When Park held Catâs hand, it was like holdinghands with a mannequin, and it was such a reliefthat he kissed her. He fell asleep on prom night inhis tuxedo pants and a Fugazi T-shirt.
He woke up the next morning whensomething light fell on his shirt â he opened hiseyes. His dad was standing over him.
âMail call,â his dad said, almost gently. Parkput his hand to his heart.
Eleanor hadnât written him a letter.
It was a postcard. âGreetings from the Landof 10,000 Lakes,â it said on the front. Park turnedit over and recognized her scratchy handwriting.It filled his head with song lyrics.
He sat up. He smiled. Something heavy andwinged took off from his chest.
Eleanor hadnât written him a letter, it was apostcard.
Just three words long.
587/593
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
I would like to thank some of the people whomade this book possible for me â and who mademe possible for this book:
First, to Colleen Eickelman, who insisted that Ipass the eighth grade.
And to the Bent and Huntley families, who keptme alive with kindness.
To my brother Forest, who promises that he isnâtjust saying things because Iâm his sister.
To Nicola Barr, Sara OâKeeffe and NatalieBraine for being so fierce and so certain, formaking the Atlantic Ocean disappear and, mostof all, for looking out for Eleanor.
Thank you, while Iâm at it, to everyone at Orionand St Martinâs Press.
Especially to the lovely and insightful SaraGoodman, whom I trusted implicitly as soon asshe sat down next to me on the bus.
To my dear friend Christopher Schelling, thebest-case scenario.
And finally, I would like to thank Kai, Laddieand Rosey for their love and their patience.(Youâre my all-time favorites.)
589/593
ABOUT THE AUTHOR
Rainbow Rowell is a newspaper columnist inOmaha, Nebraska, where she lives with her hus-band and two sons.
Copyright
AN ORION EBOOK
First published in Great Britain in 2012 by OrionBooks.This eBook first published in 2012 by OrionBooks.Copyright © Rainbow Rowell 2012
The moral right of Rainbow Rowell to be identi-fied as the author of this work has been assertedby her in accordance with the Copyright, Designsand Patents Act 1988.
All characters and events in this publication arefictitious and any resemblance to real persons,living or dead, is purely coincidental.
All rights reserved. No part of this publicationmay be reproduced, stored in a retrieval systemor transmitted in any form or by any means
without the prior permission in writing of thepublisher, nor be otherwise circulated in anyform of binding or cover other than that in whichit is published without a similar condition, in-cluding this condition, being imposed on the sub-sequent purchaser.
A CIP catalogue record for this book is availablefrom the British Library.
ISBN: 978 1 4091 1633 2
Orion BooksThe Orion Publishing Group LtdOrion House5 Upper St Martinâs LaneLondon WC2H 9EA
An Hachette UK Company
www.orionbooks.co.uk
592/593
@Created by PDF to ePub